Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n aaron_n holy_a speak_v 97 3 4.6245 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A60254 The herbal of divinity, or The dead arising from the dust to confute the hereticks of these times that say, there is no resurrection : in several sermons / by John Simpson ... Simpson, John. 1659 (1659) Wing S3816; ESTC R38922 212,064 462

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

a_o doctrine_n of_o great_a joy_n so_o it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n that_o oblige_v we_o to_o great_a holiness_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o every_o part_n and_o branch_n of_o it_o lead_v to_o holiness_n if_o thou_o meet_v with_o any_o tenant_n or_o opinion_n that_o further_v not_o holiness_n look_v on_o that_o opinion_n as_o a_o error_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v a_o truth_n that_o lead_v we_o to_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n so_o do_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o if_o we_o consider_v serious_o that_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v and_o we_o shall_v be_v happy_a at_o the_o resurrection_n in_o enjoy_v of_o god_n will_v not_o this_o raise_v up_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n to_o thankfulness_n and_o where_o there_o be_v true_a thankfulness_n will_v not_o that_o thankfulness_n be_v legible_a in_o obedience_n therefore_o see_v god_n intend_v to_o glorify_v thou_o with_o himself_o in_o body_n and_o in_o spirit_n since_o thou_o shall_v be_v ever_o happy_a with_o he_o shall_v thou_o not_o glorify_v this_o god_n while_o thou_o be_v here_o in_o thy_o life_n and_o conversation_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o pet._n 3.13_o 14._o we_o according_a to_o his_o promise_n look_v for_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n wherein_o dwell_v righteousness_n what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o this_o wherefore_o beloved_a see_v you_o look_v for_o such_o thing_n be_v diligent_a that_o you_o may_v be_v find_v of_o he_o in_o peace_n without_o spot_n and_o blameless_a a_o true_a assurance_n of_o salvation_n give_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n do_v not_o make_v we_o negligent_a in_o the_o performance_n of_o good_a duty_n it_o do_v not_o make_v we_o loose_v and_o licentious_a in_o our_o life_n but_o that_o assurance_n that_o be_v a_o right_a assurance_n which_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n will_v as_o well_o teach_v we_o to_o be_v holy_a as_o assure_v our_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v happy_a lucian_n speak_v sceff_o of_o the_o zeal_n of_o christian_n and_o their_o readiness_n to_o help_v one_o another_o do_v give_v this_o as_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d these_o miserable_a man_n say_v he_o believe_v that_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n they_o shall_v be_v immortal_a the_o scoff_a atheist_n do_v speak_v truth_n in_o this_o and_o find_v out_o the_o true_a cause_n of_o the_o zeal_n which_o be_v in_o primitive_a christian_n there_o can_v be_v no_o holiness_n without_o a_o perfwasion_n of_o happiness_n for_o man_n after_o this_o life_n if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n say_v paul_n let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v 1_o cor._n 15._o but_o when_o a_o man_n be_v persuade_v of_o this_o he_o will_v purify_v himself_o as_o christ_n be_v pure_a 1_o joh._n 3.3_o again_o this_o show_v the_o different_a condition_n between_o a_o saint_n and_o a_o sinner_n look_v upon_o saint_n and_o sinner_n eye_v they_o only_o with_o a_o carnal_a eye_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o present_a condition_n and_o it_o may_v be_v you_o shall_v apprehend_v a_o sinner_n in_o a_o better_a condition_n than_o a_o saint_n god_n ofttimes_o give_v temporal_a blessing_n to_o they_o which_o he_o deny_v to_o his_o own_o people_n they_o be_v the_o world_n happy_a creature_n but_o look_v on_o saint_n in_o this_o condition_n and_o then_o you_o shall_v see_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o condition_n of_o a_o believer_n and_o of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o christ_n the_o one_o shall_v awake_v and_o sing_v he_o shall_v awake_v at_o the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v fill_v with_o joy_n to_o be_v crown_v as_o a_o king_n with_o immortal_a glory_n the_o other_o shall_v awake_v and_o howl_v as_o agag_n when_o he_o think_v and_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o bitterness_n of_o death_n be_v past_a be_v hew_v in_o piece_n so_o epicure_n and_o profane_a man_n that_o sing_v away_o sorrow_n fear_v of_o hell_n and_o damnation_n spend_v their_o day_n in_o mirth_n in_o a_o moment_n they_o go_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n job_n 21.13_o and_o be_v raise_v from_o thence_o to_o suffer_v torment_n to_o eternity_n but_o the_o saint_n sleep_v for_o a_o while_n in_o the_o grave_n be_v raise_v to_o felicity_n this_o be_v elegant_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n 5._o chap._n we_o fool_v think_v their_o life_n madness_n and_o their_o end_n without_o honour_n and_o behold_v they_o be_v become_v the_o child_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o the_o saint_n vers_fw-la 6._o and_o in_o the_o 8._o v._o speak_v of_o themselves_o they_o do_v thus_o complain_v what_o have_v our_o pride_n profit_v we_o what_o have_v our_o pomp_n and_o riches_n bring_v unto_o we_o the_o time_n will_v come_v that_o wicked_a man_n shall_v wish_v that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v else_o that_o some_o mountain_n will_v be_v so_o propitious_a as_o to_o fall_v on_o they_o that_o they_o may_v never_o come_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n that_o shall_v fit_v upon_o the_o throne_n o_o what_o a_o doleful_a noise_n will_v it_o make_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v forth_o to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n while_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v bid_v to_o awake_v to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n who_o will_v be_v envious_a at_o wicked_a man_n that_o grow_v rich_a and_o prosper_v and_o flourish_v in_o the_o world_n that_o get_v great_a estate_n and_o leave_v their_o estate_n and_o house_n to_o their_o heir_n if_o they_o do_v but_o consider_v that_o at_o the_o resurrection_n they_o shall_v be_v enforce_v to_o take_v hell_n as_o part_v of_o their_o purchase_n and_o shall_v be_v draw_v and_o drag_v as_o slave_n to_o eternal_a torment_n i_o remember_v what_o the_o heathen_a say_v it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v be_v happy_a fuisse_fw-la faelicem_fw-la miserrimum_fw-la est_fw-la both_o it_o grieve_v a_o man_n when_o he_o come_v to_o poverty_n to_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v once_o rich_a when_o a_o man_n be_v in_o a_o disgraceful_a condition_n to_o think_v with_o himself_o i_o be_v honourable_a this_o be_v double_a misery_n remember_v say_v abraham_n to_o the_o rich_a man_n that_o thou_o in_o thy_o life_n time_n do_v enjoy_v riches_n and_o poor_a lazarus_n lie_v at_o thy_o gate_n be_v deny_v the_o crumb_n fall_v from_o thy_o table_n this_o be_v the_o aggravation_n of_o the_o rich_a man_n misery_n to_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n that_o he_o have_v be_v happy_a and_o rich_a upon_o the_o earth_n consider_v this_o and_o you_o shall_v plain_o see_v that_o rich_a and_o great_a man_n without_o christ_n though_o they_o live_v happy_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o they_o be_v in_o a_o miserable_a condition_n and_o the_o mean_a saint_n be_v in_o a_o far_o better_a condition_n than_o they_o the_o wicked_a rich_a man_n shall_v awake_v to_o howl_v and_o screech_v to_o misery_n and_o torment_v eternal_a the_o poor_a saint_n to_o joy_n rejoice_v and_o happiness_n for_o evermore_o wicked_a man_n be_v like_o the_o persian_n slave_n who_o for_o a_o day_n be_v feast_v and_o have_v all_o thing_n provide_v to_o delight_v he_o that_o they_o use_v to_o provide_v for_o the_o emperor_n and_o at_o night_n he_o be_v put_v to_o death_n so_o wicked_a man_n god_n feast_v they_o as_o slave_n here_o they_o have_v furnish_v table_n and_o servant_n child_n and_o music_n but_o poor_a wretch_n night_n come_v upon_o they_o and_o death_n take_v off_o their_o head_n and_o they_o be_v miserable_a to_o eternity_n therefore_o james_n say_v they_o be_v nourish_v as_o against_o the_o day_n of_o slaughter_n god_n do_v but_o fat_a they_o as_o man_n use_v to_o fat_a beast_n for_o sacrifice_n or_o slaughter_n so_o god_n suffer_v they_o to_o swim_v in_o pleasure_n to_o live_v in_o vanity_n to_o get_v riches_n to_o grow_v fat_a in_o the_o earth_n but_o it_o be_v to_o destroy_v they_o they_o be_v fat_v for_o the_o day_n of_o damnation_n in_o this_o glass_n or_o mirror_n see_v the_o difference_n between_o saint_n and_o sinner_n then_o in_o the_o next_o place_n see_v it_o be_v thus_o that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o such_o happiness_n at_o the_o resurrection_n let_v i_o exhort_v you_o to_o wait_v in_o expectation_n and_o desire_n of_o it_o a_o ward_n that_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v live_v beyond_o the_o day_n of_o his_o wardship_n he_o shall_v have_v his_o land_n and_o possession_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n he_o desire_v that_o the_o time_n may_v be_v expire_v that_o he_o may_v have_v all_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o now_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o guardian_n who_o it_o may_v be_v keep_v he_o
he_o profess_v not_o this_o only_a in_o word_n and_o in_o tongue_n but_o that_o he_o profess_v it_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o he_o therefore_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o from_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o by_o the_o father_n which_o have_v reveal_v it_o to_o he_o where_o we_o may_v find_v our_o position_n clear_o confirm_v to_o you_o that_o those_o that_o true_o believe_v who_o have_v the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o a_o faith_n wrought_v in_o they_o by_o themselves_o it_o do_v not_o flow_v from_o any_o natural_a principle_n but_o it_o be_v the_o immediate_a work_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n as_o we_o do_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o make_v our_o own_o heart_n so_o we_o can_v make_v our_o heart_n new_a heart_n jerem._n 13.23_o can_v the_o ethiopian_a change_n his_o skin_n or_o the_o leopard_n his_o spot_n then_o may_v you_o also_o do_v good_a who_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v evil_a by_o which_o the_o prophet_n do_v clear_o hold_v forth_o this_o truth_n that_o sinner_n can_v no_o more_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n make_v themselves_o saint_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n than_o a_o blackmore_n can_v change_v the_o colour_n of_o his_o skin_n or_o the_o leopard_n his_o spot_n a_o ethiopian_a may_v be_v paint_v white_a so_o a_o hypocritical_a sinner_n may_v be_v a_o paint_a sepulchre_n appear_v righteous_a and_o sound_a to_o man_n when_o he_o be_v full_a of_o rottenness_n within_o but_o god_n alone_o do_v change_v and_o purify_v our_o heart_n by_o his_o gift_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o for_o the_o amplify_a of_o this_o point_n to_o you_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o some_o subsequent_a consideration_n by_o which_o i_o shall_v prove_v this_o to_o you_o that_o he_o that_o true_o believe_v do_v not_o believe_v by_o any_o power_n strength_n or_o ability_n in_o himself_o by_o which_o he_o be_v in_o any_o measure_n fit_v and_o enable_v for_o this_o great_a work_n of_o true_a justify_v faith_n the_o first_o consideration_n shall_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o faith_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n by_o which_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v discover_v to_o he_o and_o by_o which_o he_o in_o his_o heart_n rom._n 10.9_o be_v make_v willing_a to_o receive_v christ_n and_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n alone_o for_o his_o justification_n rom._n 10.4_o thus_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o faith_n first_o it_o speak_v of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o light_n of_o god_n in_o the_o understanding_n so_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o look_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v isa_n 45.22_o and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o faithful_a that_o by_o faith_n they_o see_v the_o promise_n afar_o off_o heb._n 11.13_o they_o see_v christ_n not_o as_o we_o see_v he_o who_o behold_v he_o as_o he_o have_v be_v offer_v up_o as_o our_o sacrifice_n and_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o our_o sin_n dan._n 9_o but_o they_o behold_v he_o as_o one_o that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o be_v to_o make_v a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o we_o thus_o look_v upon_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o beam_n from_o god_n enlighten_v we_o in_o our_o understanding_n to_o see_v god_n grace_n in_o his_o son_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o which_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v what_o our_o own_o understanding_n be_v before_o god_n do_v give_v we_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n i_o shall_v acquaint_v you_o here_o with_o scripture_n expression_n which_o do_v sufficient_o and_o clear_o hold_v forth_o this_o unto_o we_o the_o first_o expression_n be_v that_o man_n without_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o gentile_n that_o know_v not_o christ_n he_o say_v ephes_n 4.18_o that_o they_o have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v be_v alienate_v from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n through_o the_o ignorance_n that_o be_v in_o they_o there_o be_v a_o mist_n and_o cloud_n of_o darkness_n upon_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o carnal_a and_o unbelieving_a man_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n when_o he_o have_v scale_n before_o his_o eye_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n so_o while_o the_o scale_n of_o natural_a darkness_n and_o ignorance_n be_v upon_o the_o heart_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n they_o may_v hear_v christ_n preach_v they_o may_v hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n free_o and_o full_o handle_v but_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n or_o christ_n because_o they_o have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v be_v not_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o see_v christ_n 2_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o only_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n but_o it_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o sit_v in_o darkness_n matth._n 4.16_o the_o people_n which_o sit_v in_o darkness_n see_v great_a light_n here_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o all_o man_n without_o christ_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o they_o be_v man_n that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o zacharias_n in_o his_o song_n speak_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v luke_n 1.79_o that_o he_o be_v the_o day_n spring_n from_o on_o high_a to_o give_v light_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n though_o a_o man_n have_v eye_n yet_o if_o he_o sit_v in_o a_o dark_a dungeon_n he_o can_v see_v no_o visible_a object_n it_o will_v therefore_o be_v evident_a that_o carnal_a man_n can_v see_v of_o themselves_o because_o they_o be_v not_o only_o darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n but_o they_o sit_v in_o the_o dark_a dungeon_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v not_o discover_v and_o make_v visible_a unto_o we_o until_o we_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o the_o 3_o place_n the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v of_o natural_a man_n without_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o inform_v we_o that_o they_o be_v darken_v and_o have_v their_o seat_n in_o darkness_n but_o they_o love_v darkness_n they_o be_v please_v with_o their_o present_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o darkness_n they_o be_v unwilling_a to_o have_v any_o light_n break_v forth_o upon_o they_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 3.19_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o man_n love_v darkness_n they_o love_v unbelief_n and_o ignorance_n they_o have_v rather_o be_v the_o devil_n prisoner_n in_o dungeon_n of_o darkness_n then_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n in_o christ_n marvellous_a light_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unable_a to_o make_v themselves_o happy_a in_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o unhappiness_n they_o will_v not_o come_v to_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n they_o be_v unwilling_a that_o christ_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o though_o he_o do_v offer_v salvation_n unto_o they_o they_o say_v unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o for_o we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n job_n 21.14_o like_o the_o gadarens_n they_o do_v desire_n jesus_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o their_o coast_n they_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o sin_n and_o free_a from_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.20_o when_o they_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o command_n of_o righteousness_n they_o do_v account_v it_o their_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n as_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n be_v liberty_n to_o a_o saint_n cvi_fw-la servire_fw-la regnare_fw-la est_fw-la aug._n so_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n be_v account_v liberty_n by_o a_o carnal_a man_n they_o be_v like_o the_o servant_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bore_v through_o the_o ear_n upon_o his_o profession_n that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n and_o will_v not_o go_v out_o free_a exod._n 21.5_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o every_o man_n out_o of_o christ_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n he_o love_v the_o devil_n &_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v sweet_a and_o please_a to_o he_o he_o have_v rather_o live_v as_o a_o swine_n and_o wallow_v in_o the_o filth_n and_o mire_n of_o sin_n then_o taste_v of_o those_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n he_o have_v rather_o do_v the_o devil_n drudgery_n then_o enjoy_v that_o perfect_a freedom_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v
faith_n which_o be_v not_o accompany_v with_o sanctification_n and_o good_a work_n as_o soon_o may_v a_o dead_a horse_n carry_v a_o man_n as_o a_o dead_a faith_n save_o he_o object_n this_o be_v a_o slander_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v sanctification_n answ_n if_o you_o acknowledge_v sanctification_n and_o a_o sanctify_a change_n you_o contradict_v yourselves_o for_o how_o can_v that_o make_v a_o sanctify_a change_n in_o we_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a i_o shall_v be_v glad_a if_o you_o will_v stand_v to_o a_o inward_a change_n by_o love_n and_o sanctification_n but_o some_o there_o be_v who_o have_v affirm_v that_o the_o distinction_n between_o a_o regenerate_v a_o and_o unregenerate_v man_n be_v but_o a_o legal_a distinction_n arg._n 22._o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o we_o and_o dwell_v in_o we_o do_v plain_o demonstrate_v this_o point_n for_o as_o the_o spirit_n be_v holy_a formal_o in_o itself_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n essence_n and_o be_v so_o it_o be_v effective_o holy_a because_o it_o make_v that_o man_n holy_a who_o be_v former_o sinful_a if_o thou_o be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n if_o god_n convert_v thou_o thou_o will_v have_v a_o glorious_a light_a 〈…〉_o understand_a if_o thou_o have_v nothing_o 〈…〉_o ●●linesse_n in_o thy_o will_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n live_v in_o thou_o it_o will_v be_v a_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n a_o spirit_n that_o will_v show_v thou_o what_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o what_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n a_o spirit_n check_v thou_o if_o thou_o step_v aside_o into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o a_o spirit_n lead_v thou_o into_o the_o path_n of_o holiness_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v thy_o spirit_n be_v good_a lead_v i_o into_o the_o land_n of_o holiness_n and_o uprightness_n therefore_o those_o that_o do_v not_o find_v that_o spirit_n lead_v they_o into_o the_o path_n and_o way_n of_o holiness_n those_o man_n have_v receive_v a_o counterfeit_a spirit_n to_o delude_v they_o and_o not_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n object_n the_o spirit_n be_v good_a but_o our_o action_n be_v evil_a by_o the_o adherence_n of_o sin_n in_o we_o that_o holy_a thing_n may_v be_v defile_v be_v plain_a by_o exod._n 28.36.38_o aaron_n have_v his_o plate_n upon_o his_o forehead_n be_v to_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o holy_a thing_n answ_n 1._o though_o sin_n and_o holiness_n be_v in_o the_o same_o man_n yet_o i_o deny_v that_o sin_n by_o any_o adhere_n to_o holiness_n in_o we_o do_v change_v holiness_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o but_o what_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o do_v retain_v its_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o what_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n do_v retain_v its_o fleshly_a nature_n 2._o the_o scripture_n produce_v do_v prove_v that_o in_o do_v of_o holy_a duty_n we_o sin_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v bear_v those_o sin_n which_o we_o have_v grant_v unto_o you_o before_o but_o that_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o be_v those_o sin_n can_v be_v prove_v from_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n nor_o from_o any_o other_o scripture_n which_o i_o know_v this_o still_o do_v remain_v to_o be_v prove_v arg._n 23._o there_o may_v be_v another_o argument_n draw_v from_o that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.16_o the_o spirit_n can_v bear_v witness_n to_o our_o old_a dark_a profane_a spirit_n for_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v to_o our_o spirit_n enlighten_v renew_v and_o fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v something_o in_o a_o saint_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n and_o sinful_a object_n this_o be_v true_a but_o we_o be_v not_o renew_v perfect_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v answ_n perfection_n in_o scripture_n be_v oppose_v to_o that_o which_o be_v more_o perfect_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o a_o man_n be_v so_o perfect_o renew_v as_o he_o shall_v be_v 1_o cor._n 13._o 2._o perfection_n be_v oppose_v to_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a luke_n 1_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v perfect_o renew_v that_o be_v he_o be_v holy_o &_o not_o sinful_o renew_v arg._n 24._o i_o do_v ground_n my_o next_o argument_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 14._o last_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n be_v not_o sin_n if_o we_o deny_v this_o we_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o difference_n between_o do_v good_a work_n in_o faith_n and_o do_v good_a work_n without_o faith_n if_o both_o of_o they_o be_v alike_o sinful_a or_o sin_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n be_v not_o sin_n without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o therefore_o by_o faith_n it_o be_v possible_a to_o please_v he_o by_o do_v good_a work_n arg._n 25._o another_o argument_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o that_o place_n 2_o cor._n 13._o where_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o comparison_n between_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n and_o prefer_v love_n before_o faith_n &_o hope_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o love_n be_v more_o permanent_a and_o of_o long_a continuance_n than_o faith_n and_o hope_v when_o a_o man_n come_v to_o heaven_n he_o cease_v to_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n of_o sight_n and_o vision_n he_o cease_v to_o hope_v for_o he_o enjoy_v that_o which_o he_o hope_v for_o but_o love_n shall_v continue_v therefore_o he_o say_v that_o love_n that_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n be_v great_a than_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o continuance_n that_o which_o remain_v and_o endure_v after_o this_o life_n in_o the_o saint_n in_o glory_n be_v not_o sin_n but_o love_n shall_v remain_v and_o endure_v after_o this_o life_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o sin_n object_n but_o some_o say_v if_o you_o look_v on_o this_o place_n and_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o character_n and_o description_n of_o love_n you_o will_v scarce_o find_v any_o man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v such_o a_o love_n and_o by_o your_o argument_n no_o true_a faith_n for_o he_o say_v that_o love_n suffer_v long_o it_o envy_v not_o it_o vaunt_v not_o itself_o it_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o behave_v not_o itself_o unseemly_a seek_v not_o her_o own_o be_v not_o easy_o provoke_v think_v no_o evil_a rejoice_v not_o in_o iniquity_n but_o rejoice_v in_o the_o truth_n bear_v all_o thing_n believe_v all_o thing_n hope_v all_o thing_n endure_v all_o thing_n love_n never_o fail_v answ_n every_o man_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n have_v such_o a_o love_n as_o far_o as_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n i_o say_v not_o that_o he_o have_v it_o in_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o old_a man_n but_o in_o the_o new_a man_n we_o have_v a_o new_a man_n as_o we_o have_v a_o old_a man_n and_o as_o we_o be_v sometime_o act_v by_o the_o new_a man_n so_o sometime_o by_o the_o old_a man_n as_o we_o be_v act_v by_o the_o old_a man_n we_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o love_n but_o as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v act_v in_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o new_a man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n so_o far_o we_o have_v such_o a_o love_n as_o be_v here_o set_v down_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o such_o a_o love_n and_o have_v be_v persuade_v that_o he_o have_v true_a faith_n i_o dare_v preach_v it_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o that_o man_n never_o have_v true_a faith_n for_o true_a faith_n work_v by_o such_o love_n as_o the_o apostle_n describe_v here_o and_o he_o positive_o say_v that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v other_o gift_n and_o such_o a_o faith_n by_o which_o he_o can_v remove_v mountain_n and_o have_v not_o this_o love_n that_o he_o be_v nothing_o i_o will_v not_o trouble_v weak_a christian_n by_o this_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o they_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n as_o far_o as_o thou_o be_v spiritual_a and_o live_v and_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n thou_o have_v such_o a_o love_n and_o if_o upon_o examination_n thou_o shall_v find_v that_o thou_o have_v not_o such_o a_o love_n i_o say_v thou_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o god_n for_o he_o that_o know_v god_n walk_v in_o love_n he_o that_o say_v be_v know_v god_n and_o walk_v not_o in_o love_n he_o know_v not_o god_n god_n be_v love_n and_o he_o that_o
lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v appear_v from_o heaven_n he_o say_v than_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a and_o remain_v shall_v be_v catch_v up_o together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o we_o shall_v ever_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n 2_o thess_n 4.17_o so_o that_o when_o he_o say_v thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v that_o be_v all_o those_o saint_n that_o shall_v die_v shall_v live_v again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v be_v their_o life_n three_o thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v the_o prophet_n do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o a_o resurrection_n of_o soul_n but_o when_o he_o say_v thy_o dead_a man_n he_o mean_v only_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o our_o age_n have_v be_v fertile_a to_o bring_v forth_o all_o monstrous_a tenant_n and_o opinion_n that_o other_o age_n have_v explode_v so_o it_o have_v bring_v forth_o this_o abominable_a error_n which_o many_o heathen_n by_o the_o dim_a light_n of_o nature_n have_v oppose_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v mortal_a they_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o people_n here_o in_o this_o city_n will_v meet_v with_o some_o that_o will_v affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n be_v mortal_a and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o place_n that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o thy_o dead_a man_n now_o they_o say_v man_n be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n therefore_o see_v dead_a man_n must_v live_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o soul_n or_o humane_a spirit_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n must_v die_v but_o consider_v this_o be_v against_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n do_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o body_n return_v to_o the_o dust_n and_o the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n that_o give_v it_o eccles_n 12.7_o do_v not_o paul_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n phil._n 1_o 23._o it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o he_o have_v a_o persuasion_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o his_o spirit_n do_v take_v leave_n of_o his_o body_n his_o spirit_n shall_v be_v happy_a in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v not_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o lazarus_n die_v the_o angel_n carry_v he_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n he_o come_v present_o to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o some_o happiness_n in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n therefore_o we_o be_v to_o know_v here_o in_o this_o place_n that_o god_n speak_v unto_o we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n god_n speak_v to_o man_n speak_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o language_n of_o man_n and_o as_o we_o ordinary_o call_v the_o carcase_n of_o the_o dead_a a_o dead_a man_n so_o god_n when_o he_o say_v thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o spirit_n as_o though_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v mortal_a like_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n and_o do_v die_v with_o the_o body_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v arise_v thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o will_v present_v you_o with_o place_n take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n hosea_n 13.14_o there_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o prophet_n speak_v most_o plain_o of_o the_o resurrection_n i_o will_v ransom_n they_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n i_o will_v redeem_v they_o from_o death_n o_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o plague_n o_o grave_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n etc._n etc._n which_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 15._o cite_v and_o prove_v that_o this_o promise_n shall_v be_v full_o accomplish_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n at_o the_o general_a resurrrection_n so_o likewise_o god_n teach_v his_o holy_a servant_n ezekiel_n this_o lesson_n in_o a_o holy_a vision_n ezek._n 37._o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o and_o carry_v i_o out_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o set_v i_o down_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o valley_n which_o be_v full_a of_o bone_n and_o cause_v i_o to_o pass_v by_o they_o round_o about_o and_o behold_v there_o be_v very_o many_o in_o the_o open_a valley_n and_o lo_o they_o be_v very_o dry_a and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o son_n of_o man_n can_v these_o bone_n live_v and_o i_o answer_v o_o lord_n god_n thou_o know_v again_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o prophecy_n upon_o these_o bone_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o o_o you_o dry_a bone_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n unto_o these_o bone_n behold_v i_o will_v cause_v breath_n to_o enter_v into_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v and_o i_o will_v lay_v sinew_n upon_o you_o and_o bring_v up_o flesh_n upon_o you_o and_o cover_v you_o with_o skin_n and_o put_v breath_n in_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v and_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n ezek._n 37.1_o here_o the_o prophet_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o show_v that_o a_o spirit_n of_o life_n and_o power_n shall_v come_v upon_o the_o dry_a bone_n and_o dust_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v live_v again_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n what_o be_v job_n faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o suffering_n but_o in_o the_o resurrection_n job_n 19.25_o 26._o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o he_o shall_v stand_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o though_o after_o my_o skin_n worm_n shall_v destroy_v this_o body_n yet_o in_o my_o flesh_n i_o shall_v see_v god_n here_o be_v a_o plain_a place_n in_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v eternal_a life_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n make_v flesh_n he_o say_v i_o shall_v see_v he_o with_o what_o eye_n with_o these_o eye_n and_o no_o other_o with_o these_o very_a eye_n i_o urge_v this_o place_n to_o two_o man_n and_o i_o have_v two_o several_a answer_n from_o they_o one_o that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n give_v this_o answer_n i_o may_v tremble_v to_o speak_v it_o job_n speak_v as_o a_o crazy_a old_a man_n he_o know_v not_o what_o and_o therefore_o this_o be_v no_o solid_a place_n to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n the_o second_o say_v he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n because_o he_o say_v in_o my_o flesh_n i_o shall_v see_v god_n now_o god_n be_v not_o see_v with_o fleshly_a eye_n but_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o be_v easy_a be_v speak_v of_o christ_n as_o god-man_n so_o we_o be_v say_v to_o see_v god_n when_o we_o see_v god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v rev._n 1.7_o behold_v he_o come_v with_o cloud_n and_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o and_o they_o also_o which_o pierce_v he_o and_o all_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v wail_v because_o of_o he_o with_o bodily_a eye_n we_o may_v see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o body_n and_o with_o that_o spiritual_a eye_n and_o in_o that_o spiritual_a body_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v give_v unto_o we_o at_o the_o resurrection_n with_o that_o spiritual_a eye_n and_o in_o that_o spiritual_a body_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o see_v that_o spiritual_a body_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o see_v christ_n we_o see_v god_n because_o christ_n be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o the_o place_n be_v infinite_a almost_o in_o the_o new-testament_n nothing_o be_v so_o much_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n paul_n come_v to_o athens_n among_o the_o epicure_n and_o stoic_n great_a scholar_n that_o be_v fool_n and_o ignorant_a in_o religion_n he_o preach_v the_o resurrection_n that_o god_n will_v judge_v the_o world_n by_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n so_o they_o be_v to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o to_o preach_v christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a to_o give_v evidence_n and_o assurance_n to_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v rise_v likewise_o as_o well_o as_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 15._o there_o be_v man_n creep_v into_o that_o congregation_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n therefore_o what_o strong_a argument_n do_v paul_n lay_v down_o to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n he_o show_v that_o christ_n die_v in_o vain_a and_o that_o all_o religion_n be_v in_o vain_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v impostor_n and_o liar_n who_o preach_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o that_o the_o saint_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n shall_v rise_v if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n so_o in_o 1_o
thess_n 4.17_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n and_o show_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o how_o christ_n shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v first_o verse_n 16._o here_o you_o see_v he_o hold_v forth_o this_o that_o christ_n who_o be_v that_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o true_a man_n now_o in_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o that_o the_o saint_n shall_v rise_v from_o the_o earth_n to_o meet_v he_o in_o the_o air_n so_o the_o angel_n tell_v the_o apostle_n act._n 1.11_o when_o they_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n when_o he_o ascend_v this_o same_o jesus_n shall_v so_o come_v from_o heaven_n as_o you_o now_o see_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n the_o same_o christ_n shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o apostle_n shall_v see_v he_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n with_o the_o very_a same_o eye_n with_o which_o they_o see_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n with_o the_o same_o eye_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o scripture_n be_v so_o full_a that_o i_o need_v not_o take_v more_o pain_n to_o give_v you_o more_o place_n for_o the_o open_n of_o it_o unless_o you_o will_v please_v to_o take_v one_o place_n more_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o they_o have_v a_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o this_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o law_n as_o well_o as_o we_o have_v now_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n dan._n 12.12_o and_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v michael_n stand_v up_o the_o great_a prince_n which_o stand_v for_o the_o child_n of_o thy_o people_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o always_o stand_v for_o his_o people_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n of_o trouble_n such_o as_o never_o be_v since_o there_o be_v a_o nation_n even_o to_o the_o same_o time_n and_o at_o that_o time_n thy_o people_n shall_v be_v deliver_v every_o one_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n and_o many_o of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v awake_v some_o to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o some_o to_o shame_n and_o everlasting_a contempt_n and_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o firmament_n and_o they_o that_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n as_o the_o star_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o here_o you_o see_v the_o same_o thing_n hold_v forth_o though_o i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o many_o reason_n to_o confirm_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n above_o reason_n i_o call_v here_o not_o so_o much_o for_o reason_n as_o for_o faith_n to_o believe_v what_o be_v above_o reason_n and_o what_o seem_v contrary_a to_o carnal_a reason_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o give_v you_o a_o reason_n or_o two_o draw_v from_o the_o sacred_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n god_n be_v true_a therefore_o there_o will_v be_v a_o resurrection_n he_o shall_v deceive_v and_o delude_v his_o people_n be_v there_o not_o a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n do_v he_o not_o often_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o resurrection_n and_o do_v not_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v raise_v those_o at_o the_o last_o day_n who_o be_v draw_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o father_n joh._n 6.44_o and_o therefore_o unless_o we_o will_v make_v the_o great_a god_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o think_v a_o liar_n and_o christ_n his_o son_n a_o preacher_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o great_a impostor_n in_o the_o world_n and_o all_o his_o minister_n servant_n and_o messenger_n cheater_n juggler_n and_o deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n we_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v a_o resurrection_n for_o god_n have_v speak_v of_o it_o and_o have_v reveal_v this_o to_o they_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o resurrection_n and_o they_o preach_v it_o in_o his_o name_n therefore_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n shall_v be_v find_v a_o liar_n if_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n according_a to_o his_o word_n second_o the_o justice_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n seem_v to_o call_v for_o a_o resurrection_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n so_o god_n in_o justice_n must_v send_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n to_o raise_v the_o dead_a and_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n or_o else_o how_o shall_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n shine_v clear_a and_o bright_a before_o the_o eye_n and_o sace_n of_o man_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n that_o the_o apostle_n lay_v down_o 2_o thess_n 1.5_o 6._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o persecutor_n who_o wrong_v they_o for_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n which_o be_v say_v he_o a_o manifest_a token_n of_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o demonstration_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o evident_a infallible_a sign_n that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o judgement_n day_n and_o a_o resurrection_n because_o else_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v just_a it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o it_o be_v just_a with_o the_o god_n of_o justice_n to_o punish_v the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n disobedient_a and_o wicked_a man_n who_o never_o do_v flee_v to_o his_o grace_n for_o life_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v just_a with_o he_o to_o pay_v the_o persecutor_n of_o his_o people_n their_o wage_n after_o they_o have_v do_v their_o work_n now_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o judgement_n day_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n where_o shall_v god_n give_v they_o their_o wage_n for_o persecute_v and_o trouble_v they_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o name_n how_o shall_v god_n that_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n appear_v to_o be_v just_a here_o be_v the_o first_o argument_n that_o god_n be_v just_a to_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n and_o god_n can_v not_o appear_v to_o be_v just_a if_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n day_n no_o resurrection_n therefore_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n now_o the_o same_o thing_n fall_v alike_o to_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a we_o see_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n thrive_v and_o prosper_v in_o the_o world_n they_o live_v in_o pleasure_n there_o be_v no_o band_n in_o their_o death_n as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v they_o spend_v their_o day_n in_o mirth_n and_o die_v upon_o their_o bed_n without_o sorrow_n how_o shall_v god_n appear_v to_o be_v just_a unless_o there_o be_v another_o day_n when_o god_n will_v call_v these_o man_n to_o a_o reckon_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n which_o they_o do_v commit_v against_o he_o when_o they_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n second_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o argument_n that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n make_v use_v of_o matth._n 22.31_o when_o the_o sadducee_n come_v to_o he_o who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n nor_o spirit_n nor_o devil_n as_o our_o sadducee_n do_v who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o devil_n but_o our_o own_o evil_a thought_n nor_o good_a angel_n but_o the_o good_a motion_n of_o our_o own_o spirit_n nor_o any_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n see_v what_o argument_n he_o use_v to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n have_v you_o not_o read_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v to_o you_o by_o god_n say_v i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n god_n profess_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o dead_a saint_n in_o a_o special_a manner_n therefore_o these_o must_v live_v again_o and_o be_v make_v happy_a by_o this_o god_n that_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v their_o god_n while_o their_o body_n lie_v rot_v and_o putrify_v in_o the_o earth_n god_n in_o his_o never_o fail_a faithfulness_n own_v they_o in_o the_o dust_n keep_v their_o ash_n in_o safety_n by_o which_o christ_n do_v ascertain_v we_o that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n so_o that_o you_o see_v if_o this_o truth_n be_v deny_v it_o will_v overthrow_v the_o scripture_n which_o acquaint_v we_o that_o some_o be_v vessel_n of_o honour_n some_o of_o dishonour_n that_o some_o be_v vessel_n of_o grace_n and_o some_o be_v vessel_n of_o god_n fury_n and_o indignation_n if_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n day_n no_o resurrection_n there_o can_v be_v vessel_n of_o
wrath_n and_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 15._o therefore_o a_o resurrection_n must_v be_v grant_v that_o saint_n may_v appear_v the_o vessel_n of_o god_n mercy_n 1._o use_v confut._n that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v confute_v the_o blasphemous_a and_o diabolical_a opinion_n of_o those_o that_o do_v oppose_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o these_o first_o such_o who_o do_v plain_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n as_o porphyrius_n and_o other_o who_o we_o read_v of_o and_o second_o such_o who_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o deny_v a_o resurrection_n but_o will_v pretend_v that_o they_o be_v rise_v already_o spiritual_o rise_v and_o they_o know_v no_o other_o resurrection_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v like_o those_o that_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o 2_o cor._n 15._o that_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n the_o latter_a be_v like_o those_o 2_o tim._n 2.18_o hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n that_o say_v the_o resurrection_n be_v already_o past_a the_o latter_a of_o these_o be_v the_o more_o dangerous_a come_v and_o ask_v they_o be_v there_o a_o resurrection_n yes_o we_o be_v rise_v it_o be_v past_a you_o understand_v the_o scripture_n carnal_o and_o not_o spiritual_o you_o look_v on_o the_o history_n of_o the_o word_n whereas_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v mystical_a and_o allegorical_a thus_o these_o in_o a_o more_o plausible_a way_n deny_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n but_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o sanctify_a reason_n draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n sufficient_o confute_v and_o overthrow_v this_o damnable_a curse_a opinion_n of_o they_o that_o strike_v at_o the_o very_a root_n and_o rase_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o religion_n this_o point_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v so_o clear_o hold_v forth_o in_o scripture_n that_o those_o that_o deny_v it_o either_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n or_o else_o by_o their_o allegory_n and_o diabolical_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n they_o pervert_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o now_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o be_v the_o most_o dangerous_a for_o they_o seem_v to_o carry_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o glory_n spirituality_n and_o truth_n with_o they_o and_o make_v those_o that_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o their_o solecism_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v very_o spiritual_a that_o they_o have_v some_o light_n and_o knowledge_n that_o man_n have_v not_o ordinary_o attain_v to_o whereas_o when_o you_o have_v study_v well_o the_o depth_n of_o their_o notion_n you_o shall_v find_v this_o to_o be_v all_o if_o they_o acknowledge_v a_o god_n for_o i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o these_o that_o absolute_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o god_n be_v from_o all_o eternity_n and_o god_n shall_v endure_v to_o all_o eternity_n and_o that_o be_v that_o they_o have_v in_o god_n from_o all_o eternity_n that_o be_v they_o shall_v have_v in_o god_n to_o all_o eternity_n but_o the_o body_n and_o the_o humane_a spirit_n shall_v die_v and_o be_v lose_v and_o come_v to_o nothing_o so_o all_o the_o happiness_n they_o have_v be_v that_o eternal_a and_o everlasting_a be_v concludunt_fw-la spiritum_fw-la ad_fw-la essentiam_fw-la dei_fw-la redire_fw-la eique_fw-la jungi_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la unicus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la maneat_fw-la as_o calvin_n report_v of_o those_o libertine_n which_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n in_o his_o time_n they_o conclude_v say_v he_o that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v be_v join_v to_o he_o so_o that_o one_o spirit_n shall_v only_o remain_v as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o be_v for_o ever_o and_o shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o but_o all_o the_o creature_n shall_v come_v to_o nothing_o when_o the_o body_n die_v it_o shall_v return_v to_o its_o dust_n never_o to_o be_v raise_v and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v vanish_v away_o as_o the_o soft_a air_n as_o those_o miscreant_n in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n speak_v wisd_v 2.3_o which_o if_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o happiness_n for_o the_o humane_a spirit_n of_o man_n or_o for_o the_o body_n after_o this_o life_n and_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o this_o be_v all_o their_o new_a light_n afford_v to_o we_o and_o glorious_a spirituality_n or_o rather_o infernal_a spirituality_n as_o calvin_n call_v it_o infernalem_fw-la spiritualitatem_fw-la they_o boast_v of_o and_o this_o i_o gather_v by_o their_o own_o discourse_n and_o word_n and_o likewise_o by_o search_v their_o writing_n and_o read_v their_o book_n that_o have_v former_o be_v write_v and_o that_o late_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o world_n but_o i_o think_v there_o be_v one_o objection_n for_o the_o present_a come_v to_o my_o mind_n which_o do_v call_v for_o a_o answer_n before_o i_o proceed_v object_n if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o generation_n of_o man_n as_o you_o speak_v of_o that_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o pervert_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n than_o we_o may_v see_v by_o this_o what_o inconvenience_n will_v follow_v if_o liberty_n shall_v be_v grant_v to_o man_n to_o practice_v according_a to_o their_o own_o judgement_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o seem_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n lay_v upon_o civil_a power_n that_o man_n may_v be_v keep_v from_o these_o error_n and_o damnable_a opinion_n to_o make_v strict_a law_n and_o impose_v they_o upon_o all_o people_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o professor_n to_o enforce_v they_o to_o come_v in_o and_o profess_v christ_n in_o their_o way_n or_o else_o to_o confiscate_v their_o good_n to_o banish_v they_o out_o of_o the_o country_n or_o if_o need_v be_v to_o take_v away_o their_o life_n answ_n i_o answer_v this_o do_v not_o follow_v there_o be_v such_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o find_v he_o oft_o dispute_v with_o the_o sadducee_n yet_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o overthrow_v the_o sadducee_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n by_o such_o mean_n but_o deal_v with_o they_o only_o by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n as_o we_o see_v matth._n 22._o and_o when_o james_n and_o john_n produce_v the_o example_n of_o elias_n desire_v christ_n to_o command_v fire_n to_o come_v from_o heaven_n to_o destroy_v the_o discourteous_a samaritan_n that_o refuse_v to_o entertain_v they_o he_o deny_v their_o request_n with_o a_o reproof_n luk._n 9.55_o he_o rebuke_v they_o and_o say_v you_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o spirit_n you_o be_v of_o and_o i_o think_v it_o be_v safe_a for_o we_o to_o imitate_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o no_o law_n statute_n constitution_n or_o form_n impose_v by_o man_n or_o directory_n or_o any_o thing_n you_o can_v think_v of_o discipline_n or_o government_n can_v extirpate_v this_o out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o these_o man_n for_o i_o assure_v you_o that_o few_o that_o be_v of_o this_o judgement_n will_v lose_v any_o thing_n for_o their_o conscience_n some_o of_o they_o if_o you_o bring_v in_o popery_n before_o they_o will_v lose_v a_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n for_o that_o which_o they_o maintain_v they_o will_v be_v profess_v papist_n we_o may_v see_v the_o picture_n of_o these_o man_n in_o quintinus_n who_o be_v the_o devil_n ambassador_n in_o calvin_n time_n to_o divulge_v familisticall_a tenant_n of_o who_o he_o thus_o speak_v si_fw-la hodiè_fw-la quintinus_n vinctus_fw-la teneretur_fw-la sive_fw-la à_fw-la christianis_fw-la sive_fw-la à_fw-la papistis_fw-la &_o staretur_fw-la ipsius_fw-la confessioni_fw-la non_fw-la multum_fw-la esset_fw-la anxius_fw-la certus_n enim_fw-la esset_fw-la de_fw-la suâ_fw-la liberatione_n quod_fw-la tum_fw-la horum_fw-la tum_fw-la illorum_fw-la voluntati_fw-la assentiretur_fw-la if_o quintin_n be_v now_o imprison_v by_o protestant_n or_o papist_n and_o shall_v be_v free_v or_o condemn_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n it_o will_v not_o much_o trouble_v he_o for_o he_o will_v be_v confident_a of_o his_o freedom_n because_o he_o will_v assent_v to_o the_o will_n of_o either_o of_o they_o calv._n in_o his_o instrue_n adver_o libre_fw-la c._n 8._o if_o you_o threaten_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v any_o thing_n they_o will_v present_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o be_v overtake_v with_o a_o fault_n and_o they_o will_v be_v of_o your_o mind_n if_o you_o have_v any_o power_n to_o punish_v they_o for_o what_o they_o profess_v like_o he_o in_o the_o comedian_n ais_fw-mi aio_fw-la negas_fw-la nego_fw-la do_v you_o assert_v it_o i_o assert_v it_o too_o do_v you_o deny_v it_o i_o deny_v it_o too_o and_o why_o shall_v a_o
our_o sin_n 2._o cor._n 13.4_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o our_o justification_n rom._n 4.25_o 1_o cor._n 15.20_o ascend_v in_o our_o humane_a nature_n in_o which_o he_o suffer_v and_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n 4._o eph._n and_o in_o that_o humane_a nature_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o we_o at_o his_o father_n right_a hand_n as_o our_o mediator_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o which_o they_o draw_v from_o his_o word_n he_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n in_o all_o his_o sermon_n and_o his_o faith_n be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o they_o wrest_v from_o his_o word_n be_v not_o his_o meaning_n second_o paul_n meaning_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o flesh_n as_o though_o any_o man_n shall_v conceive_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v any_o privilege_n or_o prerogative_n above_o another_o in_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v his_o kinsman_n or_o countryman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n or_o of_o the_o same_o stock_n with_o christ_n be_v descend_v from_o abraham_n or_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n thus_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o flesh_n it_o will_v avail_v man_n nothing_o that_o they_o be_v near_o to_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n by_o their_o natural_a birth_n unless_o they_o be_v near_o to_o christ_n and_o one_o with_o christ_n by_o their_o new_a birth_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o this_o place_n take_v away_o the_o difference_n which_o some_o may_v apprehend_v to_o be_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_a it_o be_v parallel_n to_o that_o place_n gal._n 3.28_o there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a there_o be_v neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o precedent_a verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o for_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o for_o jew_n so_o that_o a_o jew_n may_v as_o soon_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n as_o a_o gentile_a if_o he_o rest_v upon_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n through_o the_o redemption_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n it_o will_v likewise_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o plain_a and_o naked_a meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o subsequent_a word_n where_o he_o do_v publish_v forth_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o explain_v his_o meaning_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n to_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o trespass_n unto_o they_o the_o sinful_a gentile_n who_o be_v call_v the_o world_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v god_n peculiar_a and_o select_a people_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n from_o other_o nation_n god_n be_v reconcile_v to_o this_o world_n to_o sinful_a gentile_n as_o well_o as_o to_o god_n own_o people_n the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v among_o christian_n in_o any_o carnal_a or_o fleshly_a relation_n as_o though_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n more_o to_o the_o jew_n then_o to_o the_o gentile_n this_o be_v to_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o that_o know_v he_o spiritual_o know_v he_o so_o no_o more_o for_o in_o the_o spirit_n we_o see_v the_o partition_n wall_n which_o be_v between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n pull_v down_o and_o know_v christ_n the_o common_a saviour_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o shall_v believe_v in_o his_o name_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o answer_n full_o satisfactory_a to_o their_o second_o objection_n the_o three_o place_n from_o which_o they_o frame_v a_o objection_n be_v in_o eccles_n 3.19_o that_o which_o besall_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n befall_v beast_n even_o one_o thing_n befall_v they_o as_o the_o one_o die_v so_o die_v the_o other_o yea_o they_o have_v all_o one_o breath_n so_o that_o a_o man_n have_v no_o pre-eminence_n above_o a_o beast_n to_o this_o i_o thus_o answer_v that_o solomon_n here_o do_v not_o propose_v this_o as_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o rather_o do_v represent_v unto_o we_o the_o opinion_n of_o carnal_a man_n who_o have_v no_o great_a light_n than_o the_o dim_a eye_n of_o reason_n and_o do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o their_o folly_n and_o ignorance_n by_o communicate_v his_o own_o experience_n unto_o we_o i_o say_v in_o my_o heart_n ver_fw-la 18._o he_o speak_v this_o in_o his_o heart_n when_o the_o darkness_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v as_o a_o thick_a cloud_n hide_v the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o he_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v this_o from_o his_o heart_n and_o spirit_n enlighten_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o from_o his_o heart_n under_o a_o mist_n of_o error_n be_v surround_v with_o great_a temptation_n and_o this_o will_v appear_v by_o many_o passage_n which_o he_o utter_v in_o this_o book_n which_o do_v whole_o contradict_v that_o which_o they_o will_v gather_v from_o these_o word_n as_o the_o meaning_n of_o solomon_n for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o instance_n ecc_n 11.9_o how_o do_v he_o labour_n to_o draw_v young_a man_n from_o the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o world_n pleasure_n and_o vanity_n by_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o god_n will_v bring_v they_o unto_o judgement_n and_o what_o a_o plain_a place_n be_v that_o against_o sadducee_n familist_n and_o libertine_n that_o deny_v a_o judgement_n day_n and_o a_o resurrection_n with_o which_o he_o do_v put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o book_n ecc_n 12._o and_o the_o last_o god_n shall_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o any_o more_o of_o their_o argument_n because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o those_o which_o have_v be_v bring_v already_o and_o the_o same_o answer_n which_o have_v be_v give_v unto_o these_o will_v give_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o any_o other_o objection_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v against_o this_o truth_n 2._o use_v from_o this_o error_n again_o since_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n appear_v so_o clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n and_o of_o the_o same_o body_n let_v we_o abhor_v and_o abandon_v the_o gross_a fanatical_a conceit_n of_o all_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o that_o profess_v themselves_o open_a enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n brethren_n i_o beseech_v you_o loath_a abhor_v and_o detest_v this_o hellish_a diabolical_a doctrine_n for_o as_o christian_n be_v to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n with_o all_o zeal_n and_o affection_n of_o spirit_n so_o we_o be_v to_o detest_v and_o abhor_v all_o error_n that_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o all_o zeal_n and_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n though_o these_o be_v much_o offend_v with_o the_o zeal_n and_o sharpness_n of_o the_o saint_n suppose_v that_o such_o heat_n and_o holy_a anger_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o therefore_o if_o a_o man_n though_o in_o the_o spirit_n witness_v against_o these_o conceit_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n of_o they_o present_o they_o say_v that_o though_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v so_o sharp_a in_o his_o speech_n but_o consider_v how_o our_o bless_a saviour_n oft_o in_o his_o preach_n and_o discourse_n thunder_n and_o lighten_v in_o the_o face_n of_o man_n that_o oppose_v the_o truth_n do_v he_o not_o call_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n a_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o adulterer_n to_o their_o face_n and_o have_v not_o paul_n and_o peter_n expression_n to_o this_o purpose_n peter_n tell_v simon_n magus_n he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a gall_n of_o bitterness_n do_v not_o paul_n call_v elymas_n the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n act._n 13.10_o and_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o hypocrite_n that_o he_o preach_v to_o joh._n 8._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n therefore_o know_v that_o as_o christ_n though_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o he_o yet_o he_o make_v use_v of_o such_o sharp_a and_o bitter_a speech_n so_o a_o man_n may_v have_v such_o speech_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v to_o god_n glory_n when_o he_o thus_o speak_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v commend_v that_o he_o can_v not_o bear_v with_o those_o that_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o
tanquam_fw-la ad_fw-la epulas_fw-la invitata_fw-la as_o though_o she_o have_v be_v invite_v to_o a_o banquet_n we_o read_v of_o some_o when_o they_o come_v to_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n they_o be_v sorry_a that_o they_o have_v no_o more_o life_n to_o lose_v for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n tertullian_n say_v that_o the_o christian_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o suffer_v that_o they_o be_v as_o willing_a to_o be_v devour_v by_o the_o lion_n as_o the_o people_n be_v desirous_a of_o their_o destruction_n by_o the_o lion_n eusebius_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o as_o the_o proconsul_n exhort_v germanicus_n to_o relent_v admonish_v he_o of_o his_o tender_a year_n pray_v he_o to_o pity_v his_o own_o case_n be_v now_o in_o the_o flower_n of_o his_o youth_n he_o without_o intermission_n entice_v the_o beast_n to_o devour_v he_o eusebius_n four_o book_n of_o the_o eccl._n hist_n what_o steel_v the_o spirit_n of_o these_o man_n and_o carry_v they_o above_o carnal_a reason_n and_o the_o weak_a principle_n of_o nature_n but_o a_o strong_a and_o powerful_a persuasion_n in_o their_o spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o glorious_a and_o joyful_a resurrection_n at_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n prove_v to_o we_o heb._n 11.35_o some_o be_v torture_v not_o accept_v deliverance_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v a_o better_a resurrection_n he_o inform_v we_o that_o when_o deliverance_n be_v offer_v they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n they_o expect_v a_o resurrection_n threaten_n can_v not_o terrify_v they_o from_o the_o truth_n nor_o promise_n draw_v they_o to_o error_n because_o they_o be_v without_o waver_v persuade_v of_o a_o resurrection_n this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v polycarpus_n the_o martyr_n so_o willing_a todie_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o appear_v by_o his_o speech_n when_o he_o be_v tie_v at_o the_o stake_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v gracious_o vouchsafe_v this_o day_n to_o allot_v i_o a_o portion_n among_o the_o number_n of_o martyr_n among_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o everlasting_a life_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n etc._n etc._n euseb_n this_o be_v that_o likewise_o that_o make_v the_o saint_n to_o be_v so_o merry_a and_o cheerful_a upon_o their_o deathbed_n when_o hilarion_n lie_v sick_a and_o in_o his_o flesh_n do_v feel_v a_o little_a fear_n of_o death_n he_o present_o reprove_v himself_o and_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n egredere_fw-la egredere_fw-la anima_fw-la go_v forth_o go_v forth_o my_o soul_n have_v thou_o serve_v christ_n so_o many_o year_n and_o now_o be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o die_v what_o difference_n can_v there_o be_v between_o the_o death_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o wicked_a profane_a unbelieving_a man_n if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a at_o all_o and_o therefore_o as_o you_o desire_v to_o live_v comfortable_o and_o to_o die_v happy_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o christ_n rejoice_v upon_o your_o deathbed_n live_v constant_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o while_o other_o that_o have_v seduce_v ignorant_a and_o poor_a people_n into_o familisme_n with_o a_o brazen_a face_n all_o their_o day_n shall_v tremble_v upon_o their_o deathbed_n be_v afraid_a of_o death_n and_o dread_v a_o judgement_n day_n which_o they_o have_v deny_v like_o the_o emperor_n hadrian_n animula_fw-la vagula_fw-la blandula_fw-la quae_fw-la nunc_fw-la abibis_fw-la in_o loca_fw-la pallidula_fw-la rigida_fw-la nudula_fw-la poor_a wander_a pale_a quiver_a soul_n whither_o shall_v thou_o go_v platina_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o shall_v call_v for_o death_n and_o not_o look_v on_o death_n as_o a_o way_n to_o the_o infernal_a prison_n but_o as_o a_o passage_n to_o immortality_n in_o heaven_n you_o shall_v see_v the_o lion_n death_n slay_v and_o find_v nothing_o but_o honey_n in_o the_o carcase_n you_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o confidence_n that_o your_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v while_o they_o shall_v tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o a_o resurrection_n for_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o god_n seldom_o suffer_v man_n that_o be_v grow_v to_o this_o height_n of_o unbelief_n and_o ungodliness_n to_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o die_v without_o gall_a and_o trouble_a conscience_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o some_o of_o many_o that_o be_v profess_a atheist_n who_o when_o they_o come_v to_o their_o death_n bed_n though_o they_o in_o their_o health_n and_o strength_n swim_v in_o a_o world_n of_o pleasure_n and_o contentment_n assert_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o lie_v on_o their_o deathbed_n none_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o a_o god_n and_o to_o tremble_v so_o much_o at_o his_o power_n as_o these_o man_n so_o none_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o death_n hell_n and_o a_o resurrection_n than_o some_o of_o these_o that_o have_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o hell_n or_o a_o resurrection_n i_o remember_v the_o speech_n of_o zeno_n the_o philosopher_n if_o i_o will_v persuade_v any_o man_n from_o atheism_n say_v he_o i_o will_v lead_v he_o to_o the_o deathbed_n of_o a_o atheist_n when_o he_o be_v gasp_v out_o his_o last_o breath_n so_o if_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o persuade_v you_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n by_o what_o i_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n if_o i_o know_v where_o any_o of_o these_o do_v lie_v sick_a i_o will_v carry_v you_o to_o their_o deathbed_n and_o you_o may_v see_v some_o of_o they_o trouble_v and_o gall_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o have_v blasphemous_o profess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n hereafter_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v at_o the_o present_a to_o add_v many_o more_o word_n for_o i_o hope_v better_a thing_n of_o you_o and_o such_o thing_n which_o accompany_v salvation_n i_o hope_v there_o be_v few_o such_o spirit_n as_o these_o in_o this_o congregation_n yet_o i_o know_v the_o devil_n be_v so_o subtle_a that_o where_o he_o think_v people_n be_v most_o spiritual_a and_o know_v god_n most_o and_o be_v acquaint_v with_o christ_n he_o send_v his_o imp_n his_o sadducee_n to_o trouble_n and_o assault_v they_o he_o do_v not_o set_v so_o much_o upon_o any_o people_n to_o draw_v they_o away_o as_o upon_o those_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o devil_n know_v such_o who_o he_o have_v safe_a within_o his_o own_o command_n and_o many_o of_o these_o be_v not_o assault_v by_o these_o imp_n but_o when_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v heir_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o adoption_n and_o to_o have_v their_o name_n write_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o none_o be_v able_a to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o devil_n send_v his_o evil_a angel_n to_o such_o man_n as_o these_o therefore_o know_v that_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o such_o spirit_n i_o think_v good_a to_o speak_v somewhat_o before_o that_o be_v forewarn_v you_o may_v be_v fore-armed_n praemoniti_fw-la praemuniti_fw-la that_o you_o may_v go_v on_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o might_n though_o the_o devil_n may_v buffet_v you_o for_o a_o time_n by_o these_o wicked_a instrument_n and_o cast_v his_o fiery_a dart_n into_o your_o heart_n and_o spirit_n to_o persuade_v you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n and_o may_v certain_o know_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v a_o truth_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n and_o it_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o my_o soul_n that_o you_o may_v live_v continual_o and_o constant_o in_o the_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o your_o body_n which_o be_v join_v with_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n will_v sweeten_v your_o life_n and_o crown_v your_o death_n with_o happiness_n death_n which_o come_v in_o upon_o man_n as_o a_o legal_a curse_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o blessing_n unto_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v your_o fear_n but_o desire_v with_o paul_n you_o shall_v desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v lay_v aside_o as_o of_o no_o worth_n or_o value_n christ_n will_v appear_v unto_o you_o but_o a_o shadow_n fancy_n and_o forge_a chimaera_n of_o man_n brain_n as_o the_o wicked_a pope_n be_v persuade_v who_o do_v thus_o glory_n in_o his_o riches_n what_o great_a riches_n have_v we_o get_v by_o this_o fable_n of_o christ_n
your_o own_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n your_o body_n as_o well_o as_o your_o spirit_n be_v god_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 6.20_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o reason_n why_o christ_n die_v and_o revive_v and_o rise_v again_o that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a rom._n 14.9_o that_o as_o a_o servant_n be_v more_o his_o master_n then_o his_o own_o so_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v more_o his_o then_o 〈◊〉_d own_o we_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o those_o in_o who_o christ_n have_v a_o propriety_n and_o interest_n we_o shall_v be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v king_n and_o lord_n over_o we_o all_o and_o rule_v over_o we_o his_o sceptre_n of_o glory_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o every_o heart_n and_o his_o throne_n shall_v be_v exalt_v in_o every_o spirit_n thus_o my_o dead_a body_n they_o shall_v rise_v they_o shall_v rise_v as_o i_o they_o be_v my_o dead_a man_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o live_a man_n here_o you_o see_v that_o christ_n will_v own_v they_o for_o his_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o dust_n there_o be_v some_o that_o shall_v speak_v to_o christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o though_o they_o be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o he_o who_o he_o will_v not_o own_o say_v depart_v from_o 〈◊〉_d i_o know_v you_o not_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n but_o christ_n will_v own_v his_o saint_n mal._n 3.17_o they_o shall_v be_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n when_o i_o make_v up_o my_o jewel_n or_o special_a treasure_n and_o i_o will_v spare_v they_o as_o a_o man_n spare_v his_o own_o son_n that_o serve_v he_o as_o man_n will_v not_o part_v with_o their_o jewel_n so_o christ_n will_v not_o lose_v the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n they_o be_v part_n of_o his_o special_a treasure_n the_o four_o consideration_n be_v this_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v may_v be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v the_o life_n soul_n and_o form_n that_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o the_o body_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o it_o so_o christ_n jesus_n dwell_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n by_o his_o spirit_n their_o body_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o as_o a_o man_n may_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o belong_v to_o that_o humane_a spirit_n in_o i_o because_o his_o humane_a spirit_n move_v live_v in_o it_o and_o do_v as_o a_o divine_a power_n act_n in_o it_o so_o our_o body_n be_v raise_v may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o shall_v act_v as_o the_o spirit_n form_n and_o soul_n in_o they_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o soul_n which_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o all_o saint_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v by_o he_o the_o five_o consideration_n death_n can_v dissolve_v the_o union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o a_o believer_n the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n be_v the_o urn_n in_o which_o the_o ash_n of_o dead_a saint_n be_v preserve_v rom._n 8.38_o 39_o i_o be_o persuade_v say_v paul_n that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n man_n do_v consist_v of_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o humane_a spirit_n and_o death_n can_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o god_n love_n and_o our_o body_n no_o more_o than_o it_o can_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o his_o love_n and_o our_o soul_n among_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o in_o christ_n the_o apostle_n do_v reckon_v up_o death_n 1_o cor._n 3.22_o which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o curse_n but_o a_o blessing_n to_o saint_n it_o will_v be_v a_o curse_n unto_o we_o do_v it_o bring_v a_o irrecoverable_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n to_o our_o body_n rev._n 14.13_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n death_n disability_n to_o cast_v our_o body_n out_o of_o god_n love_n and_o protection_n be_v that_o which_o do_v convert_v death_n through_o christ_n into_o a_o blessing_n unto_o we_o paul_n call_v saint_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o bodily_a death_n 1_o thess_n 4.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o that_o sleep_n in_o christ_n as_o sleep_n do_v not_o bereave_v man_n of_o life_n so_o death_n do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o saint_n their_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n as_o a_o philosopher_n tell_v a_o tyrant_n he_o may_v kill_v he_o but_o not_o hurt_v he_o so_o death_n may_v kill_v but_o can_v hurt_v a_o saint_n because_o the_o union_n between_o god_n and_o he_o be_v indissolvible_a rom._n 14.8_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o arise_v sixth_o consideration_n the_o body_n of_o saint_n be_v sanctify_v by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v but_o own_v they_o sanctification_n be_v the_o mark_n or_o seal_v of_o christ_n as_o merchant_n do_v set_v their_o seal_n and_o mark_n upon_o their_o good_n which_o they_o will_v own_v so_o christ_n will_v for_o ever_o own_o that_o upon_o which_o he_o have_v set_v the_o seal_n and_o mark_v of_o his_o sanctify_a spirit_n the_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n and_o christ_n will_v never_o cease_v to_o own_o his_o own_o house_n and_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v for_o his_o habitation_n god_n do_v not_o only_o honour_v our_o body_n by_o call_v they_o his_o house_n but_o call_v they_o his_o temple_n 1_o cor._n 6.19_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v not_o a_o paradox_n then_o in_o divinity_n that_o christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v own_v they_o as_o his_o own_o seven_o consideration_n christ_n shall_v be_v incomplete_a a_o man_n that_o want_v a_o member_n be_v incomplete_a and_o imperfect_a so_o christ_n shall_v be_v imperfect_a and_o incomplete_a be_v he_o defective_a in_o any_o of_o his_o member_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v as_o his_o body_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o some_o of_o the_o schoolman_n make_v use_v of_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n from_o the_o incompleatnesse_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o its_o proper_a body_n which_o it_o do_v inform_v and_o with_o which_o in_o union_n it_o make_v one_o compositum_fw-la so_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v complete_a in_o his_o mystical_a body_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o own_o person_n the_o church_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n eph._n 1._o last_o because_o as_o a_o body_n be_v not_o full_a and_o complete_a in_o his_o be_v that_o want_v a_o member_n so_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v complete_a if_o any_o part_n of_o he_o be_v want_v and_o therefore_o the_o body_n of_o all_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v that_o christ_n may_v appear_v in_o his_o glory_n and_o completeness_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o thus_o have_v open_v this_o doctrine_n and_o illustrate_v it_o by_o these_o consideration_n i_o shall_v draw_v some_o useful_a conclusion_n from_o it_o use_v 1_o see_v christian_n shall_v be_v one_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o be_v one_o here_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n that_o one_o member_n shall_v oppose_v and_o fight_v against_o another_o member_n be_v against_o nature_n and_o that_o one_o christian_n shall_v fight_v against_o another_o or_o take_v his_o fellow-member_n by_o the_o throat_n be_v against_o the_o principle_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o 13._o of_o gen._n and_o the_o s._n ver_fw-la abram_n do_v thus_o speak_v unto_o his_o brother_n lot_n let_v there_o be_v no_o strife_n i_o pray_v thou_o between_o i_o and_o thou_o for_o we_o be_v brethren_n christian_n shall_v not_o strive_v or_o contend_v one_o against_o another_o because_o they_o be_v fellow-member_n it_o be_v report_v of_o john_n that_o in_o his_o old_a age_n be_v unable_a by_o weakness_n to_o speak_v long_o unto_o the_o congregation_n he_o will_v stand_v up_o and_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o long_a sermon_n ingeminate_v this_o precept_n diligite_fw-la filioli_fw-la diligite_fw-la
not_o go_v to_o suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n as_o if_o it_o be_v his_o great_a suffering_n not_o to_o suffer_v for_o the_o gospel_n but_o we_o have_v learn_v this_o point_n by_o rote_n and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n few_o understand_v we_o talk_v of_o it_o in_o a_o parrat-like_a way_n and_o we_o have_v mumble_v it_o over_o in_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n but_o few_o have_v dive_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o it_o or_o suck_v the_o sweetness_n and_o spirituality_n which_o lie_v in_o it_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o lukewarm_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o future_a let_v we_o look_v up_o to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v give_v we_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a wisdom_n that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v a_o more_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o it_o he_o that_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n be_v the_o only_a teacher_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v report_v of_o the_o pelican_n that_o her_o young_a be_v poison_a by_o the_o serpent_n she_o do_v give_v they_o life_n by_o her_o own_o death_n and_o blood_n so_o christ_n do_v quicken_v we_o his_o member_n to_o a_o life_n of_o immortality_n by_o his_o own_o death_n and_o blood_n and_o do_v give_v we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o life_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o death_n bloodshedding_n and_o resurrection_n which_o do_v enforce_v the_o necessity_n of_o our_o resurrection_n from_o he_o who_o be_v our_o head_n and_o this_o be_v the_o persuasion_n of_o true_a saint_n and_o as_o it_o be_v report_v of_o the_o phoenix_n that_o when_o she_o be_v to_o die_v she_o bring_v spice_n into_o her_o nest_n which_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n she_o herself_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o turn_v to_o ash_n and_o out_o of_o her_o ash_n come_v a_o new_a phoenix_n so_o a_o true_a christian_a know_v that_o though_o he_o may_v be_v burn_v and_o turn_v into_o ash_n yet_o out_o of_o his_o own_o ash_n his_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v again_o to_o a_o new_a life_n of_o glory_n which_o do_v arm_v he_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o persecution_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n again_o this_o do_v discover_v what_o enemy_n they_o be_v to_o christ_n his_o spirit_n and_o member_n who_o by_o their_o wile_n subtlety_n and_o hellish_a logic_n will_v destroy_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n they_o will_v rob_v christ_n of_o his_o member_n who_o do_v here_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o body_n of_o dead_a saint_n they_o will_v make_v the_o spirit_n a_o liar_n who_o do_v seal_v up_o saint_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o bedemption_n eph._n 5.30_o and_o in_o who_o they_o wait_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o body_n bom._n 8.23_o they_o will_v rob_v saint_n of_o their_o comfort_n which_o god_n do_v give_v they_o in_o the_o believe_a of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o the_o earth_n i_o be_o the_o more_o earnest_n against_o these_o man_n because_o i_o know_v these_o factor_n for_o antichrist_n be_v both_o active_a and_o subtle_a as_o the_o serpent_n do_v endeavour_v to_o beguile_v eve_n 2_o cor._n 11.3_o so_o these_o endeavour_n to_o undermine_v man_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n one_o and_o a_o chiese_n part_n of_o christ_n simple_a gospel_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n when_o paul_n preach_v this_o at_o athens_n the_o stoic_n and_o epicure_n do_v look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o babbler_n and_o this_o piece_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v always_o account_v foolishness_n to_o the_o learned_a greek_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v jealous_a of_o they_o for_o fear_v they_o shall_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o be_o i_o jealous_a over_o poor_a christian_n know_v that_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o man_n that_o pretend_v to_o be_v spiritual_a man_n of_o great_a light_n wisdom_n knowledge_n and_o deep_a understanding_n and_o when_o you_o have_v dive_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o their_o spirit_n this_o be_v all_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o they_o which_o they_o will_v labour_v to_o draw_v you_o to_o assent_v unto_o to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n no_o corporal_a resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n at_o all_o these_o be_v like_o those_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o his_o time_n that_o corrupt_a or_o deal_v deceitful_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o metaphor_n be_v borrow_v from_o cheat_a vintner_n or_o cozen_a merchant_n that_o adulterate_a their_o commodity_n to_o make_v they_o vendible_a as_o beza_n do_v well_o observe_v so_o these_o that_o their_o horrid_a opinion_n and_o blasphemy_n may_v be_v vendible_a they_o endeavour_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o sophisticate_a the_o word_n and_o adulterate_a it_o from_o the_o plain_a and_o simple_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n therefore_o let_v i_o in_o love_n to_o your_o soul_n once_o more_o desire_v you_o that_o you_o will_v be_v watchful_a that_o none_o of_o these_o draw_v you_o away_o from_o these_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n which_o have_v be_v discover_v to_o you_o and_o have_v be_v seal_v upon_o your_o heart_n and_o spirit_n by_o his_o own_o bless_a spirit_n the_o devil_n do_v sow_v the_o tare_n of_o familisme_n in_o man_n heart_n while_o they_o sleep_v but_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o you_o shall_v believe_v they_o though_o for_o a_o time_n you_o may_v be_v draw_v to_o question_v they_o and_o the_o resurrection_n as_o those_o in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 15._o and_o may_v be_v delude_v by_o familisticall_a fancy_n and_o notion_n as_o some_o good_a christian_n have_v be_v yet_o if_o god_n have_v lay_v hold_n on_o you_o and_o draw_v you_o to_o he_o in_o christ_n he_o will_v not_o total_o leave_v you_o to_o these_o damnable_a opinion_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a these_o serpent_n will_v deceive_v even_o the_o elect_a but_o christ_n intimate_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v ever_o deceive_v the_o elect._n and_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o man_n as_o these_o 2_o tim._n 2.19_o say_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v sure_a have_v this_o seal_n of_o his_o everlasting_a election_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o therefore_o let_v not_o man_n deceive_v you_o but_o live_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o that_o spirit_n that_o be_v give_v forth_o in_o the_o gospel_n take_v heed_n of_o these_o impostor_n hug_v not_o the_o devil_n in_o samuel_n mantle_n suffer_v not_o the_o devil_n to_o devour_v you_o in_o a_o sheep_n skin_n but_o walk_v in_o the_o plain_a simple_a path_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o that_o you_o may_v do_v this_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o give_v you_o some_o few_o direction_n for_o the_o preserve_n you_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o secure_n of_o you_o from_o this_o infection_n of_o familisme_n first_o i_o wish_v you_o to_o apply_v yourselves_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v you_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n through_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n 2_o tim._n 5.15_o when_o these_o man_n come_v unto_o you_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v present_v you_o with_o book_n write_v in_o a_o strange_a language_n stuff_v with_o swell_a nonsense_n and_o affect_v phrase_n that_o none_o understand_v but_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o their_o blasphemous_a horrid_a and_o damnable_a opinion_n and_o will_v endeavour_v to_o lead_v you_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o your_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n against_o their_o delusion_n some_o of_o they_o will_v affirm_v that_o peter_n and_o paul_n when_o they_o write_v their_o epistle_n have_v but_o a_o little_a light_n be_v but_o child_n they_o be_v enlighten_v man_n grow_v up_o unto_o the_o stature_n of_o perfection_n labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o bright_a star_n of_o truth_n do_v shine_v no_o where_o so_o glorious_o as_o in_o the_o old_a popish_a author_n and_o new_a familisticall_a scribbler_n which_o they_o will_v present_v unto_o you_o therefore_o that_o you_o may_v not_o be_v draw_v away_o by_o these_o keep_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o book_n in_o which_o there_o be_v more_o light_n then_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o from_o which_o you_o may_v expect_v more_o light_n if_o you_o look_v to_o god_n for_o his_o spirit_n to_o open_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n in_o the_o read_n of_o it_o dulcius_fw-la exipso_fw-la fonte_fw-la bibuntur_fw-la aquae_fw-la water_n be_v sweet_a at_o the_o wellhead_n antruthe_n do_v present_v themselves_o most_o sweet_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o
well_o and_o fountain_n from_o which_o other_o writer_n do_v fetch_v the_o truth_n which_o we_o find_v in_o their_o writing_n he_o that_o addict_v himself_o more_o to_o the_o read_n of_o man_n writing_n then_o the_o scripture_n be_v like_o one_o that_o leave_v the_o fountain_n where_o the_o water_n be_v pure_a have_v rather_o drink_v in_o the_o channel_n where_o they_o be_v impure_a and_o muddy_a true_o if_o you_o grow_v in_o grace_n you_o will_v grow_v in_o like_n and_o approve_v the_o holy_a scripture_n though_o it_o be_v write_v in_o a_o plain_a style_n and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o that_o humane_a eloquence_n and_o rhetoric_n in_o it_o which_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o some_o man_n who_o preach_v themselves_o rather_o then_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o man_n be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o day_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o in_o love_n with_o the_o bless_a and_o holy_a scripture_n i_o remember_v what_o a_o orator_n speak_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o cicero_n say_v he_o be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o oratory_n that_o delight_v to_o read_v the_o oration_n of_o cicero_n so_o he_o be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o christianity_n that_o in_o believe_v delight_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o man_n that_o fall_v off_o to_o these_o opinion_n present_o they_o slight_v the_o scripture_n and_o either_o whole_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o they_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o by_o allegorise_v those_o thing_n that_o have_v a_o plain_a simple_a historical_a meaning_n in_o they_o that_o be_v the_o first_o rule_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o there_o you_o shall_v see_v no_o such_o sancy_n and_o fond_a notion_n as_o these_o man_n have_v the_o second_o direction_n be_v this_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o that_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o plain_a familiar_a way_n you_o may_v know_v some_o familist_n by_o their_o bombastick_a language_n they_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o language_n of_o canaan_n in_o their_o sermon_n but_o they_o have_v a_o affect_a language_n of_o their_o own_o that_o few_o understand_v but_o those_o that_o have_v apply_v themselves_o much_o to_o the_o study_n of_o their_o writing_n and_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o their_o opinion_n and_o by_o their_o chemical_a dark_a expression_n and_o fond_a notion_n they_o ●●lude_v poor_a soul_n that_o think_v they_o be_v spiritual_a man_n and_o that_o great_a thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o they_o which_o be_v not_o discover_v to_o other_o saint_n when_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o horrid_a antichristianisme_n or_o atheism_n lie_v at_o the_o bottom_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o shall_v be_v evident_a when_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 2_o tim._n ●_o 9_o their_o folly_n shall_v be_v manifest_a unt_n all_o man_n paul_n say_v when_o he_o come_v to_o preach_v at_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 2.4_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o excellency_n of_o speech_n nor_o in_o the_o entice_a word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n but_o in_o plainness_n of_o speech_n in_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n and_o it_o be_v the_o command_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n speak_v he_o shall_v speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 4.11_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o do_v relate_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v man_n be_v to_o speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n speak_v nothing_o but_o truth_n and_o as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o plainness_n of_o speech_n st._n paul_n speak_v of_o true_a gospel-preacher_n say_v we_o use_v great_a plainness_n of_o speech_n the_o scripture_n be_v in_o a_o plain_a familiar_a style_n the_o sermon_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v plain_a familiar_a sermon_n adorn_v with_o plain_a simile_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o imitate_v their_o master_n so_o shall_v our_o discourse_n be_v with_o all_o plainness_n of_o speech_n &_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n &_o power_n that_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v give_v not_o to_o the_o eloquence_n of_o our_o tongue_n but_o to_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o convert_v of_o soul_n therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o that_o lead_v you_o from_o the_o plainness_n of_o preach_v hide_v their_o curse_a error_n in_o a_o thicket_n and_o cloud_n of_o dark_a work_n and_o unscripture-like_a expression_n not_o hold_v fast_o the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n according_a to_o god_n precept_n 2_o tim._n 1.13_o 2_o cor._n 3.12_o look_v on_o the_o scripture_n and_o see_v how_o paul_n speak_v of_o justification_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o so_o let_v we_o preach_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n but_o those_o that_o have_v language_n not_o like_o the_o language_n of_o scripture_n suspect_v they_o they_o make_v a_o fair_a show_n there_o be_v great_a glory_n and_o outward_a pomp_n in_o their_o word_n but_o latet_fw-la anguis_fw-la there_o be_v a_o snake_n that_o lie_v under_o these_o fine_a green_a herb_n take_v heed_n of_o such_o man_n and_o look_v mmore_o for_o the_o inward_a power_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o speak_n of_o man_n then_o for_o fine_a word_n phrase_n notion_n and_o simile_n that_o man_n may_v make_v use_n of_o to_o win_v you_o to_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o error_n the_o three_o direction_n which_o i_o shall_v present_v unto_o you_o be_v this_o take_v heed_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n for_o one_o reason_n why_o so_o many_o fall_n off_o from_o the_o truth_n to_o these_o horrid_a opinion_n be_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n some_o of_o these_o thought_n that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o knowledge_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n and_o that_o they_o understand_v as_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o have_v hear_v as_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n as_o any_o can_v preach_v of_o it_o and_o of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o any_o can_v speak_v they_o know_v as_o they_o suppose_v what_o this_o man_n speak_v and_o what_o the_o other_o preach_v what_o this_o man_n judgement_n be_v what_o author_n do_v write_v and_o they_o know_v perfect_o as_o they_o imagine_v whatsoever_o lie_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v embrace_v for_o truth_n and_o by_o their_o pride_n do_v surfeit_v of_o their_o knowledge_n suppose_v that_o they_o know_v all_o point_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n they_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o gospel_n save_o spiritual_o or_o practical_o so_o that_o as_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n come_v to_o loath_a manna_n and_o lust_v after_o other_o food_n so_o these_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o spiritual_a pride_n begin_v to_o loathe_v the_o heavenly_a manna_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o disesteem_v it_o for_o the_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o nothing_o now_o will_v please_v they_o but_o new_a fancy_n therefore_o they_o must_v have_v sermon_n dress_v in_o another_o fashion_n new_o cook_v new_a notion_n and_o new_a conceit_n and_o anything_o that_o be_v new_a please_v they_o better_o than_o the_o old_a and_o ancient_a truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o when_o god_n teach_v a_o man_n to_o understand_v the_o gospel_n aright_o the_o more_o he_o know_v the_o gospel_n the_o more_o he_o see_v his_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o man_n see_v he_o never_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n full_o that_o man_n see_v that_o he_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o sanctification_n this_o man_n look_v not_o on_o his_o knowledge_n mere_o as_o it_o be_v speculative_a but_o as_o it_o be_v practical_a when_o he_o see_v any_o unbelief_n in_o his_o heart_n he_o say_v within_o himself_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o see_v any_o hatred_n in_o his_o spirit_n to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o any_o inclination_n to_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a he_o wise_o conclude_v i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o sanctification_n when_o he_o find_v sadness_n in_o his_o spirit_n o_o say_v he_o there_o be_v more_o in_o the_o gospel_n concern_v the_o spirit_n of_o joy_n and_o consolation_n than_o i_o have_v attain_v to_o when_o he_o read_v sundry_a enigmatical_a and_o difficult_a place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o have_v nor_o attain_v to_o the_o spiritual_a meaning_n of_o they_o o_o say_v he_o i_o be_o not_o sufficient_o acquaint_v with_o the_o truth_n which_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o word_n though_o i_o
bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n rev._n 14.4.13_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v psal_n 17._o when_o i_o awake_v i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o likeness_n that_o be_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n after_o i_o have_v have_v a_o long_a sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n when_o the_o night_n be_v past_a and_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v shine_v i_o shall_v awake_v and_o then_o i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o likeness_n isa_n 57.2_o the_o prophet_n have_v a_o expression_n that_o run_v this_o way_n speak_v of_o righteous_a and_o merciful_a man_n say_v he_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o peace_n they_o shall_v rest_v in_o their_o bed_n and_o when_o stephen_n be_v stone_v to_o death_n the_o holy_a ghost_n tell●●●_n we_o that_o he_o fall_v asleep_a act._n 7.60_o and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n call_v the_o place_n where_o they_o bury_v their_o dead_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sleep_a place_n the_o earth_n to_o every_o saint_n be_v but_o a_o sleep_a place_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n and_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o this_o great_a trumpet_n be_v blow_v the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v awake_v and_o rise_v he_o that_o die_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v one_o of_o his_o dead_a man_n do_v not_o die_v but_o sleep_n and_o at_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v in_o a_o moment_n awake_v out_o of_o his_o sleep_n when_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n do_v make_v the_o fabric_n of_o the_o world_n all_o thing_n be_v speedy_o and_o sudden_o make_v for_o the_o make_n of_o any_o thing_n there_o be_v but_o verbum_fw-la &_o factum_fw-la the_o word_n speak_v and_o present_o the_o thing_n be_v make_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a let_v there_o be_v a_o firmament_n and_o there_o be_v a_o firmament_n so_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v speak_v the_o word_n and_o bid_v we_o awake_v in_o a_o moment_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o the_o lord_n shall_v awake_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o death_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n let_v i_o give_v you_o another_o observation_n you_o see_v at_o the_o great_a day_n that_o the_o dead_a that_o lie_n in_o the_o dust_n shall_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v bid_v they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n now_o as_o no_o rational_a man_n will_v conclude_v from_o this_o place_n that_o the_o dead_a who_o it_o may_v be_v have_v their_o dust_n lie_v in_o several_a place_n in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o world_n a_o portion_n of_o their_o dust_n have_v any_o power_n to_o raise_v themselves_o though_o they_o be_v bid_v to_o awake_v eve_o so_o when_o god_n speak_v to_o soul_n that_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v do_v command_v they_o to_o believe_v repent_v live_v holy_o and_o rejoice_v we_o can_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v any_o power_n strength_n and_o ability_n in_o the_o creature_n to_o do_v what_o they_o be_v command_v to_o do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o dead_a can_v awake_v of_o themselves_o though_o christ_n command_v they_o to_o awake_v as_o when_o christ_n do_v bid_v lazarus_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o grave_n he_o do_v present_o come_v forth_o though_o he_o have_v not_o any_o power_n in_o himself_o to_o come_v forth_o but_o that_o power_n that_o bid_v he_o come_v forth_o enable_v he_o to_o come_v forth_o so_o though_o christ_n exhort_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v and_o to_o do_v good_a duty_n we_o have_v no_o power_n in_o ourselves_o to_o do_v good_a duty_n but_o that_o power_n that_o bid_v we_o do_v good_a duty_n must_v enable_v we_o to_o do_v they_o or_o else_o we_o be_v never_o able_a to_o do_v they_o which_o move_v augustine_n to_o pray_v thus_o dam_fw-la domine_fw-la quod_fw-la jubes_fw-la &_o jube_fw-la quod_fw-la vis_fw-la give_v lord_n what_o thou_o command_v and_o command_v what_o thou_o will_v again_o in_o the_o next_o place_n take_v notice_n that_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v raise_v be_v call_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o dust_n you_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n the_o dust_n for_o a_o time_n be_v a_o habitation_n for_o the_o saint_n in_o eccles_n 12.5_o it_o be_v say_v man_n shall_v go_v to_o his_o long_a home_n the_o grave_n be_v a_o home_n or_o house_n for_o a_o time_n which_o may_v assure_v we_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v entrust_v to_o the_o dust_n that_o which_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n and_o no_o other_o thing_n in_o stead_n of_o it_o must_v be_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n three_o here_o be_v a_o reason_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o our_o resurrection_n thy_o dew_n be_v as_o the_o dew_n of_o herb_n the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o heavenly_a dew_n upon_o the_o dead_a body_n and_o dust_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o raise_v they_o up_o and_o quicken_v they_o to_o a_o new_a life_n christ_n in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o dew_n for_o three_o reason_n first_o because_o as_o the_o dew_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o earth_n the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o grass_n without_o the_o help_n and_o labour_n of_o man_n mich._n 5.7_o so_o without_o the_o labour_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o creature_n the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o dust_n and_o ash_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v quicken_v they_o to_o a_o life_n and_o make_v they_o flourish_v after_o they_o have_v lie_v rot_v and_o molder_v in_o the_o grave_n second_o as_o the_o dew_n do_v come_v down_o speedy_o and_o sudden_o upon_o the_o earth_n as_o you_o may_v gather_v from_o that_o expression_n of_o hushai_n in_o that_o speech_n of_o he_o to_o absalon_n concern_v david_n 2_o sam._n 17.12_o we_o will_v come_v upon_o he_o in_o some_o place_n where_o he_o shall_v be_v find_v and_o light_n on_o he_o as_o the_o dew_n fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n as_o the_o dew_n fall_v sudden_o and_o unexpected_o so_o we_o will_v surprise_v david_n so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v come_v in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n sudden_o upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o he_o compare_v his_o come_n to_o the_o come_n of_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n and_o to_o lightning_n which_o we_o know_v be_v dart_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n with_o great_a volubility_n and_o swiftness_n in_o the_o three_o place_n christ_n shall_v be_v as_o dew_n because_o as_o dew_n do_v make_v the_o herb_n on_o which_o it_o fall_v to_o be_v fruitful_a and_o to_o wax_v green_a and_o flourish_n after_o they_o have_v seem_v to_o be_v dead_a so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v quicken_v the_o dead_a carcase_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o put_v a_o life_n into_o their_o dust_n thus_o moses_n the_o holy_a servant_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o flourish_a of_o it_o deut._n 32.2_o say_v that_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v drop_v as_o the_o rain_n and_o his_o speech_n shall_v distil_v as_o the_o dew_n as_o the_o small_a rain_n upon_o the_o tender_a herb_n and_o as_o the_o shower_n upon_o the_o grass_n as_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n make_v the_o thing_n upon_o which_o it_o fall_v fruitful_a and_o fertile_a so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n fall_v down_o upon_o the_o dust_n and_o ash_n upon_o the_o rot_a bone_n putrify_v carcase_n and_o skull_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v cause_v they_o to_o flourish_v and_o to_o spring_v up_o and_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o new_a life_n put_v into_o they_o by_o his_o come_n down_o upon_o they_o four_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o the_o earth_n shall_v cast_v out_o her_o dead_a from_o whence_o we_o may_v strong_o conclude_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n that_o body_n which_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v in_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n but_o i_o have_v sufficient_o speak_v of_o these_o point_n in_o my_o former_a discourse_n so_o that_o if_o i_o shall_v speak_v from_o all_o these_o particular_n i_o shall_v rather_o repeat_v what_o i_o have_v say_v then_o present_v you_o with_o new_a matter_n the_o thing_n therefore_o that_o i_o shall_v open_v unto_o you_o to_o day_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o your_o joy_n shall_v be_v this_o to_o show_v you_o what_o great_a joy_n there_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o these_o word_n awake_v and_o sing_v i_o do_v make_v bold_a to_o finish_v this_o subject_n here_o among_o you_o this_o day_n because_o i_o
know_v not_o whether_o i_o shall_v have_v a_o opportunity_n to_o speak_v to_o you_o again_o from_o these_o word_n and_o see_v i_o have_v handle_v the_o two_o former_a part_n in_o this_o place_n i_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o finish_v my_o discourse_n from_o this_o text_n among_o you_o another_o reason_n be_v because_o i_o do_v find_v some_o familisticall_a spirit_n here_o that_o be_v trouble_v with_o what_o i_o deliver_v be_v enemy_n to_o that_o christ_n who_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n &_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o be_v to_o be_v wrought_v by_o his_o power_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o little_a i_o regard_v the_o speech_n of_o these_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o saint_n i_o will_v not_o seem_v for_o their_o sake_n to_o desert_n my_o discourse_n therefore_o i_o do_v resolve_v to_o go_v on_o with_o it_o this_o day_n then_o three_o i_o apprehend_v it_o may_v much_o further_o the_o work_n of_o the_o day_n for_o if_o we_o have_v remember_v god_n aright_o in_o our_o praise_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o the_o land_n and_o nation_n we_o have_v do_v it_o spiritual_o and_o have_v more_o rejoice_v in_o spiritual_a then_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o if_o our_o joy_n shall_v end_v in_o rejoice_v only_o for_o temporal_a mercy_n we_o shall_v rejoice_v rather_o carnal_o then_o spiritual_o therefore_o have_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o day_n rejoice_v for_o the_o mercy_n that_o god_n have_v show_v to_o the_o land_n i_o think_v i_o shall_v do_v well_o if_o i_o raise_v you_o in_o your_o spirit_n by_o what_o i_o shall_v speak_v from_o these_o word_n and_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o nationall_n mercy_n and_o temporal_a deliverance_n take_v occasion_n to_o draw_v your_o eye_n to_o behold_v by_o faith_n how_o you_o and_o all_o saint_n shall_v rejoice_v when_o you_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o enemy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n that_o so_o i_o may_v sublimate_v your_o joy_n by_o carry_v you_o high_o in_o the_o spirit_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o text_n awake_v and_o sing_v you_o know_v we_o express_v our_o joy_n by_o sing_v as_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o that_o place_n psal_n 126.1_o when_o the_o lord_n turn_v again_o the_o captivity_n of_o zion_n we_o be_v like_o they_o that_o dream_n then_o be_v our_o mouth_n fill_v with_o laughter_n and_o our_o tongue_n with_o sing_v sing_v in_o scripture_n be_v a_o expression_n of_o great_a joy_n if_o any_o be_v merry_a let_v he_o sing_v say_v james_n so_o my_o evangelicall_n prophet_n to_o show_v what_o great_a joy_n there_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v he_o bid_v we_o awake_a and_o sing_v so_o that_o this_o be_v the_o point_n there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n for_o the_o amplify_a of_o which_o point_n i_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o cause_n of_o rejoice_v there_o will_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n the_o spirit_n and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v then_o be_v reunite_v together_o again_o which_o be_v disunite_v for_o many_o year_n and_o as_o the_o spirit_n do_v with_o some_o regret_n grief_n and_o unwillingness_n leave_v the_o body_n have_v a_o natural_a desire_n and_o appetite_n be_v plant_v into_o it_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o creator_n after_o union_n with_o the_o body_n so_o the_o spirit_n can_v but_o rejoice_v when_o it_o be_v unite_v again_o to_o the_o body_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o spirit_n of_o saint_n under_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o revelation_n 6.10_o cry_v how_o long_o holy_a and_o true_a intimate_v their_o desire_n to_o be_v reunite_v to_o their_o body_n and_o in_o 2_o cor._n 5.4_o the_o apostle_n there_o show_v we_o that_o though_o the_o saint_n be_v willing_a to_o live_v with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o unwillingness_n in_o they_o to_o leave_v their_o body_n therefore_o they_o have_v rather_o have_v immortality_n swallow_v up_o of_o life_n then_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n we_o that_o be_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n say_v he_o groan_n be_v burden_a not_o for_o that_o we_o will_v be_v unclothe_v but_o clothe_v upon_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n there_o seem_v in_o these_o word_n to_o be_v hold_v forth_o a_o unwillingnes_n in_o the_o saint_n to_o be_v unclothe_v of_o their_o body_n to_o put_v off_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o flesh_n we_o observe_v in_o philosophy_n that_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a appetite_n in_o the_o soul_n or_o form_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o that_o body_n that_o it_o once_o inform_v and_o as_o it_o leave_v the_o body_n with_o some_o unwillingness_n so_o there_o be_v a_o desire_n of_o reunion_n when_o they_o be_v part_v so_o that_o reunion_n will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o joy_n for_o as_o there_o be_v joy_n at_o the_o meeting_n of_o friend_n so_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n that_o be_v long_o together_o in_o this_o world_n shall_v rejoice_v when_o they_o shall_v meet_v together_o again_o this_o be_v one_o ground_n of_o joy_n from_o their_o meeting_n the_o body_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v meet_v together_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o reunion_n after_o there_o have_v be_v a_o disunion_n between_o they_o but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n there_o will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o great_a joy_n because_o there_o will_v be_v a_o absolute_a perfection_n both_o in_o the_o body_n and_o in_o the_o soul_n god_n shall_v be_v perfection_n in_o the_o spirit_n in_o every_o faculty_n of_o it_o and_o god_n in_o his_o glory_n shall_v dwell_v likewise_o in_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v but_o a_o imperfect_a knowledge_n of_o god_n there_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v free_a from_o all_o ignorance_n have_v the_o full_a vision_n of_o god_n here_o we_o see_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n dark_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d enigmatical_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v there_o we_o shall_v see_v face_n to_o face_n here_o we_o do_v but_o as_o it_o be_v see_v the_o back_n part_n of_o god_n with_o moses_n as_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n in_o state_n use_v to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n god_n do_v as_o it_o be_v hide_v his_o face_n here_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o full_a discovery_n which_o he_o will_v make_v of_o himself_o hereafter_o we_o do_v but_o sip_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n here_o but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o river_n of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v as_o austin_n say_v guttulas_fw-la but_o little_a drop_n of_o joy_n but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o joy_n here_o we_o have_v a_o sight_n of_o god_n which_o do_v not_o full_o satisfy_v but_o still_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v more_o of_o god_n and_o more_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v col._n 3._o v._n 4._o when_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o we_o also_o shall_v appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.2_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v not_o evident_a to_o we_o what_o glory_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o understanding_n how_o our_o affection_n shall_v be_v ravish_v and_o enamour_v with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o spirit_n but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o be_v shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v o_o what_o tongue_n of_o rhetoric_n can_v express_v this_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v like_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v there_o be_v more_o in_o it_o then_o the_o eloquence_n of_o angel_n can_v set_v forth_o unto_o you_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v such_o unspeakable_a glory_n in_o their_o spirit_n so_o likewise_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o glory_n on_o their_o body_n alas_o our_o body_n now_o be_v but_o vile_a body_n weak_a body_n but_o what_o say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 3._o ult_n god_n shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_o his_o glorious_a body_n or_o to_o his_o body_n of_o glory_n for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n at_o his_o transfiguration_n be_v change_v and_o his_o face_n do_v shine_v and_o his_o whole_a body_n do_v shine_v with_o heavenly_a brightness_n and_o celestial_a
place_n then_o leave_v for_o evangelicall_n grief_n for_o any_o sin_n that_o we_o have_v commit_v and_o as_o sin_n shall_v not_o then_o bring_v any_o sorrow_n upon_o we_o so_o neither_o shall_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v the_o troubler_n of_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o afflict_v we_o here_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o afflict_v we_o as_o he_o do_v job_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o patience_n and_o though_o for_o the_o present_a when_o we_o look_v on_o christ_n in_o his_o person_n we_o see_v that_o we_o be_v conqueror_n over_o the_o devil_n in_o he_o yet_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o devil_n his_o fiery_a temptation_n dart_n and_o arrow_n which_o he_o shoot_v into_o our_o spirit_n so_o that_o he_o ofttimes_o cause_v we_o to_o walk_v something_o sad_o occasion_v trouble_n which_o i_o call_v tempestates_fw-la mentis_fw-la the_o tempest_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o paul_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v buffet_v by_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n but_o then_o this_o wicked_a fiend_n shall_v be_v so_o chain_v up_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v let_v loose_a upon_o we_o again_o then_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o under_o our_o foot_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v any_o liberty_n give_v he_o to_o tempt_v we_o any_o more_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n revelation_n 12.10_o his_o accusation_n and_o complaint_n against_o they_o can_v be_v hear_v by_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n to_o prejudice_v their_o justification_n but_o he_o do_v persecute_v the_o woman_n upon_o the_o earth_n rev._n 12.13_o he_o afflict_v the_o church_n and_o bring_v much_o trouble_n ofttimes_o to_o the_o saint_n but_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v free_v whole_o from_o the_o devil_n from_o all_o temptation_n from_o all_o trouble_n all_o enemy_n that_o can_v be_v think_v upon_o so_o that_o then_o thing_n shall_v be_v full_o accomplish_v and_o complete_v for_o our_o good_a the_o apostle_n though_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n for_o the_o present_a have_v abolish_v death_n and_o sin_n to_o we_o 2_o tim._n 1.10_o and_o destroy_v he_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n who_o be_v the_o devil_n heb._n 2.14_o yet_o he_o inform_v we_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n be_v not_o full_o accomplish_v complete_v and_o perfect_v till_o the_o resurrection_n as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o that_o place_n 1_o cor._n 15.54_o then_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v that_o say_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n day_n death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o shall_v it_o be_v that_o be_v it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n we_o have_v now_o what_o be_v there_o promise_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n then_o we_o shall_v have_v what_o be_v in_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o actual_a fruition_n of_o the_o thing_n promise_v so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n because_o then_o every_o saint_n shall_v ride_v in_o a_o chariot_n of_o triumph_n as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o all_o enemy_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o as_o christ_n in_o his_o own_o body_n and_o spirit_n do_v ride_v to_o heaven_n and_o triumph_v over_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n death_n sin_n curse_n and_o condemnation_n and_o as_o the_o life_n that_o we_o live_v for_o the_o present_a be_v by_o behold_v this_o victory_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n so_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n all_o the_o saint_n shall_v imitate_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o their_o own_o person_n shall_v ride_v as_o conqueror_n triumph_v over_o all_o enemy_n and_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n of_o vision_n see_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v in_o their_o own_o person_n which_o now_o by_o faith_n they_o see_v do_v for_o they_o in_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n so_o that_o all_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n be_v take_v away_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v great_a joy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o those_o who_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o next_o place_n as_o the_o occasion_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o sorrow_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o so_o likewise_o all_o thing_n all_o object_n that_o may_v move_v spiritual_a joy_n shall_v be_v present_v to_o the_o saint_n to_o raise_v their_o spirit_n to_o a_o spiritual_a joy_n who_o shall_v be_v raise_v and_o make_v happy_a with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o can_v be_v think_v upon_o that_o can_v make_v any_o one_o happy_a that_o the_o saint_n shall_v enjoy_v they_o shall_v enjoy_v god_n in_o a_o full_a measure_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n sweet_a stream_n of_o joy_n will_v flow_v into_o their_o spirit_n because_o god_n will_v make_v himself_o the_o author_n and_o worker_n of_o their_o joy_n sing_v o_o daughter_n of_o zion_n say_v the_o prophet_n zeph._n 3.14_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v o_o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o why_o must_v zion_n sing_v and_o shout_n behold_v the_o reason_n in_o the_o 15._o verse_n the_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o and_o in_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la he_o will_v rejoice_v over_o thou_o with_o sing_v there_o be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o their_o joy_n lay_v down_o so_o the_o 12._o of_o neh._n 43._o it_o be_v say_v the_o people_n rejoice_v for_o god_n make_v they_o rejoice_v with_o great_a joy_n so_o at_o the_o resurrection_n god_n shall_v make_v they_o to_o rejoice_v they_o shall_v be_v always_o then_o at_o the_o fountain_n at_o the_o wellhead_n in_o thy_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o thy_o right_a hand_n say_v the_o psalmist_n psal_n 17.11_o there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o all_o the_o saint_n shall_v then_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n god_n shall_v empty_v himself_o and_o the_o river_n and_o stream_n of_o joy_n which_o be_v in_o himself_o into_o their_o heart_n and_o spirit_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o into_o those_o stream_n and_o river_n of_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o a_o god_n macarius_n speak_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ebriety_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o then_o shall_v be_v inebriate_v with_o the_o fullness_n of_o a_o spiritual_a joy_n if_o there_o be_v such_o rejoice_v here_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n when_o he_o have_v a_o light_n from_o god_n to_o see_v something_o of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n what_o spiritual_a joy_n shall_v there_o be_v when_o our_o joy_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o full_a if_o there_o be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o ebb_a of_o the_o spirit_n here_o what_o joy_n will_v there_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o high-tyde_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o glory_n hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n when_o we_o shall_v drink_v our_o fill_n of_o those_o river_n of_o pleasure_n which_o run_v in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n and_o if_o there_o be_v so_o much_o sweetness_n in_o spiritual_a joy_n here_o what_o tongue_n can_v express_v or_o heart_n conceive_v what_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o that_o joy_n that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o great_a glorious_a and_o high_a be_v the_o expression_n by_o which_o saint_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o joy_n that_o they_o feel_v here_o but_o no_o saint_n can_v tell_v what_o the_o joy_n shall_v be_v hereafter_o at_o the_o resurrection_n psal_n 94.19_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o my_o thought_n within_o i_o thy_o comfort_n delight_v my_o soul_n the_o delight_n be_v such_o here_o that_o david_n have_v rather_o have_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n in_o a_o spirit_n of_o joy_n upon_o he_o then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o glory_n and_o great_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n thou_o have_v put_v great_a joy_n into_o my_o heart_n then_o when_o the_o corn_n and_o wine_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v increase_v psal_n 4._o and_o in_o psal_n 84._o one_o day_n in_o thy_o house_n be_v worth_a a_o thousand_o if_o there_o be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n here_o in_o the_o behold_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o mouth_n in_o the_o embrace_n of_o his_o son_n when_o he_o do_v now_o sprinkle_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n o_o what_o joy_n shall_v there_o be_v when_o god_n shall_v pour_v out_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o sweetness_n into_o our_o soul_n when_o he_o shall_v open_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o love_n when_o
affirm_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o but_o by_o faith_n and_o work_v together_o these_o deny_v justification_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n through_o faith_n and_o set_v up_o a_o justification_n by_o inherent_a righteousness_n in_o themselves_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v then_o justify_v from_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o our_o sight_n sense_n feeling_n life_n spirit_n and_o conversation_n the_o strong_a argument_n which_o they_o bring_v for_o the_o confirm_v of_o their_o assertion_n and_o in_o which_o they_o do_v most_o triumph_n as_o though_o they_o have_v obtain_v a_o victory_n over_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n be_v in_o the_o 2_o jam._n 24._o you_o see_v then_o how_o that_o by_o work_n be_v a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o do_v not_o james_n say_v they_o lay_v down_o our_o assertion_n in_o so_o many_o word_n join_v faith_n and_o good_a work_n as_o concause_n of_o justification_n some_o to_o escape_v the_o edge_n of_o this_o argument_n have_v deny_v this_o epistle_n to_o be_v canonical_a like_v he_o who_o be_v unable_a to_o untie_v the_o gordian_a knot_n do_v cut_v it_o in_o piece_n thus_o lucius_n osiander_n propose_v this_o objection_n of_o his_o antagonist_n do_v think_v that_o he_o have_v for_o ever_o cut_v it_o to_o piece_n by_o their_o answer_n but_o second_o other_o yea_o most_o of_o those_o who_o we_o call_v protestant_n writer_n for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o james_n to_o paul_n and_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n with_o one_o consent_n give_v in_o this_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n distinguish_v of_o a_o twofole_a justification_n first_o a_o justification_n before_o god_n second_o a_o justification_n before_o man_n paul_n as_o they_o apprehend_v do_v speak_v of_o the_o former_a of_o these_o james_z of_o the_o latter_a suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o genuine_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o james_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n that_o be_v declarative_o before_o man_n but_o with_o respect_n and_o due_a reverence_n to_o the_o piety_n and_o learning_n of_o these_o man_n who_o give_v in_o this_o answer_n give_v i_o leave_v be_v not_o swear_v in_o verba_fw-la magistri_fw-la or_o oblige_v to_o justify_v what_o any_o man_n or_o many_o man_n though_o godly_a and_o learned_a have_v apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o a_o place_n to_o show_v my_o reason_n why_o i_o dissent_v from_o they_o and_o second_o to_o give_v in_o my_o own_o answer_n to_o the_o place_n first_o i_o apprehend_v that_o james_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o a_o justification_n before_o man_n because_o his_o proof_n be_v from_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n when_o he_o offer_v up_o his_o son_n isaac_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o precede_a word_n which_o action_n of_o abraham_n will_v not_o have_v justify_v he_o before_o man_n they_o will_v have_v look_v upon_o he_o rather_o as_o a_o cruel_a malefactor_n than_o a_o saint_n in_o offer_v up_o his_o only_a son_n second_o this_o business_n be_v so_o transact_v between_o god_n and_o abraham_n that_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a to_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v justify_v he_o for_o it_o when_o he_o go_v to_o perform_v this_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o his_o god_n he_o leave_v his_o servant_n behind_o he_o and_o carry_v no_o man_n with_o he_o but_o his_o son_n who_o be_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v three_o if_o we_o view_v the_o place_n gen._n 22.11_o 12._o out_o of_o which_o james_n do_v prove_v his_o argument_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o it_o prove_v not_o a_o justification_n towards_o man_n but_o towards_o god_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v lay_v not_o thy_o hand_n upon_o the_o lad_n for_o now_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o fear_v god_n see_v thou_o have_v not_o withhold_v thy_o son_n thy_o only_a son_n from_o i_o this_o angel_n be_v christ_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o his_o call_n of_o himself_o god_n and_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o as_o a_o man_n that_o fear_v he_o and_o in_o the_o 16_o 17_o and_o 18._o verse_n by_o myself_o have_v i_o swear_v say_v the_o lord_n because_o thou_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n that_o in_o blessing_n i_o will_v bless_v thou_o and_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v it_o be_v clear_a by_o this_o that_o the_o justification_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o justification_n before_o man_n but_o before_o god_n last_o i_o shall_v therefore_o give_v in_o what_o i_o do_v conceive_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o these_o word_n james_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o justification_n as_o it_o be_v take_v proper_o and_o use_v by_o paul_n but_o do_v speak_v of_o justification_n as_o it_o be_v take_v improper_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o it_o as_o a_o act_n by_o which_o we_o be_v reconcile_v and_o our_o iniquity_n pardon_v but_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o a_o act_n by_o which_o god_n do_v approve_v a_o man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o work_n which_o he_o do_v after_o his_o justification_n abraham_n be_v a_o justify_v man_n by_o faith_n before_o isaac_n be_v bear_v now_o god_n do_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o work_n and_o fruit_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o do_v justify_v he_o by_o his_o work_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o be_v he_o do_v approve_v he_o to_o be_v a_o man_n that_o fear_v and_o love_v he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o learned_a melancthon_n non_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la verbum_fw-la justifieari_fw-la pro_fw-la reconciliari_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la alius_fw-la saepe_fw-la dicitur_fw-la pro_fw-la approbari_fw-la justificatur_fw-la homo_fw-la ex_fw-la operibus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la habens_fw-la justitiam_fw-la operum_fw-la approbatur_fw-la placet_fw-la deo_fw-la the_o word_n justification_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o reconciliation_n but_o approbation_n man_n be_v justify_v by_o his_o work_n that_o be_v have_v a_o righteousness_n of_o work_n or_o samctification_n god_n do_v approve_v he_o his_o work_n do_v please_v god_n and_o as_o when_o we_o see_v good_a fruit_n upon_o a_o tree_n we_o use_v to_o say_v this_o be_v a_o good_a tree_n not_o that_o the_o good_a fruit_n do_v make_v the_o tree_n good_a but_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a do_v bring_v forth_o the_o good_a fruit_n so_o god_n have_v make_v we_o good_a tree_n by_o justify_v of_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n do_v enable_v we_o to_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o speak_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n to_o we_o man_n do_v approve_v we_o to_o be_v good_a tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o reproof_n of_o these_o man_n and_o in_o answer_n to_o their_o objection_n second_o this_o do_v serve_v to_o discover_v and_o reprove_v such_o who_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v no_o papist_n who_o yet_o in_o a_o more_o refine_a and_o subtle_a way_n do_v preach_v forth_o the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o the_o other_o do_v maintain_v and_o prefer_v some_o popish_a book_n which_o be_v wrought_v with_o a_o fine_a and_o curious_a thread_n before_o any_o book_n which_o have_v be_v publish_v by_o any_o who_o have_v be_v eminent_a for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n through_o faith_n for_o justification_n these_o be_v they_o who_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a will_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_n lay_v siege_n against_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n while_o they_o pretend_v that_o they_o be_v fighter_n for_o it_o and_o these_o preach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v so_o much_o upon_o a_o christ_n without_o we_o for_o justification_n as_o a_o christ_n within_o we_o and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o a_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o by_o christ_n within_o we_o which_o christ_n of_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o when_o you_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o he_o but_o the_o working_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n in_o zeal_n and_o love_n to_o god_n and_o when_o they_o have_v high_a thought_n of_o god_n their_o will_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o they_o think_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o god_n think_v and_o submit_v to_o god_n in_o their_o way_n they_o look_v upon_o these_o working_n as_o their_o perfection_n and_o justification_n and_o this_o be_v christ_n within_o they_o such_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n as_o this_o be_v be_v the_o first_o rudiment_n and_o principle_n by_o which_o the_o politic_a and_o civilise_v familist_n do_v leaven_n their_o pupil_n lead_v they_o from_o the_o plain_a and_o simple_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o delusion_n which_o be_v in_o h._n n._n the_o first_o father_n of_o the_o familist_n which_o have_v live_v of_o late_a or_o be_v yet_o live_a do_v work_v
debt_n by_o this_o consideration_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a to_o every_o man_n who_o have_v any_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o the_o purity_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o sinful_a man_n to_o find_v out_o any_o way_n but_o the_o good_a old_a way_n of_o grace_n to_o happiness_n and_o salvation_n second_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n that_o god_n may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n man_n fall_v by_o pride_n therefore_o god_n will_v not_o estate_n he_o in_o happiness_n but_o by_o humble_v he_o by_o bring_v he_o upon_o his_o knee_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n natural_o we_o be_v full_a of_o pride_n and_o will_v rise_v by_o that_o by_o which_o we_o fall_v we_o will_v be_v make_v happy_a by_o work_n as_o we_o be_v make_v unhappy_a by_o work_n every_o man_n that_o see_v himself_o see_v how_o that_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n run_v this_o way_n man_n will_v be_v do_v work_a and_o act_v that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v but_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v sinful_a man_n to_o glory_n before_o he_o in_o his_o own_o work_n lest_o he_o shall_v loose_v the_o glory_n of_o grace_n rom._n 4.2_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n for_o we_o until_o we_o lie_v down_o at_o the_o door_n of_o grace_n if_o god_n enter_v into_o judgement_n no_o man_n live_a shall_v be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n psal_n 143.2_o god_n do_v stop_v up_o all_o other_o way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o way_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o justifi_a the_o object_n and_o vessel_n of_o his_o grace_n god_n do_v not_o so_o much_o intend_v man_n salvation_n by_o grace_n as_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o praise_n he_o form_v his_o people_n for_o himself_o that_o they_o may_v be_v happy_a in_o himself_o and_o with_o himself_o and_o they_o may_v show_v forth_o his_o praise_n psal_n 43.21_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v glory_v in_o himself_o therefore_o he_o justify_v and_o save_v we_o only_o by_o that_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o himself_o in_o the_o lord_n shall_v all_o the_o seed_n of_o israel_n be_v justify_v and_o shall_v glory_v and_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o have_v dicourse_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o our_o election_n predestination_n and_o adoption_n do_v sweet_o acknowledge_v that_o grace_n do_v stream_n forth_o unto_o we_o in_o all_o these_o particular_n that_o it_o may_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n ephes_n 1.5_o 6._o he_o make_v we_o object_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v from_o we_o and_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o give_v unto_o he_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n all_o the_o saint_n be_v bring_v forth_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o sing_v forth_o this_o truth_n rev._n 7.10_o salvation_n to_o our_o god_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n they_o ascribe_v salvation_n not_o to_o their_o own_o work_n merit_n deserve_n or_o worthiness_n but_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n as_o earthly_a and_o gross_a body_n can_v mount_v up_o to_o heaven_n which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o purity_n and_o perfection_n but_o they_o fall_v down_o by_o their_o own_o weight_n to_o the_o earth_n unable_a to_o ascend_v thither_o so_o our_o work_n fall_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n as_o unable_a to_o ascend_v up_o to_o the_o place_n of_o god_n purity_n and_o glory_n to_o justify_v we_o in_o his_o sight_n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v attribute_v only_o to_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o he_o will_v not_o justify_v we_o in_o the_o court_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n we_o shall_v not_o read_v our_o name_n write_v in_o heaven_n till_o he_o bring_v we_o from_o our_o own_o work_n righteousness_n performance_n and_o endeavour_n to_o rest_v upon_o the_o strong_a arm_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v give_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o our_o free_a justification_n and_o salvation_n three_o god_n save_v we_o by_o grace_n because_o if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o grace_n it_o have_v be_v needless_a that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v have_v be_v give_v to_o we_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a for_o man_n to_o have_v wrought_v out_o his_o own_o salvation_n by_o his_o own_o work_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v disrobe_v himself_o of_o his_o glory_n and_o be_v make_v man_n like_o we_o why_o shall_v he_o have_v live_v a_o life_n of_o sorrow_n and_o die_v a_o death_n of_o shame_n have_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o have_v get_v salvation_n by_o our_o own_o work_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v that_o if_o righteousness_n have_v be_v by_o the_o law_n than_o christ_n have_v dye_v in_o vain_a and_o thus_o have_v i_o open_v to_o you_o and_o show_v you_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o aword_n now_o to_o make_v a_o little_a use_n of_o it_o and_o so_o i_o shall_v conclude_v for_o the_o present_a in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v concern_v the_o eternal_a grace_n of_o god_n sufficient_o confute_v that_o error_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o many_o man_n who_o think_v that_o work_n and_o act_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n love_n to_o the_o creature_n god_n do_v not_o love_v we_o because_o we_o love_v he_o but_o we_o love_v god_n because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o from_o eternity_n god_n do_v not_o begin_v to_o love_v we_o when_o we_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n but_o god_n love_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v new_a creature_n faith_n be_v not_o the_o antecedent_n cause_n but_o consequent_a of_o election_n tit._n 3.5_o not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o this_o passage_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o mercy_n do_v precede_v regeneration_n and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o spiritual_a renovation_n vocation_n and_o justification_n by_o faith_n do_v follow_v predestination_n if_o paul_n speak_v the_o truth_n rom._n 8.30_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a they_o he_o also_o call_v and_o who_o he_o call_v they_o he_o also_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o justfy_v they_o he_o also_o glorify_v god_n love_v we_o when_o we_o have_v no_o being_n in_o ourselves_o or_o among_o any_o creature_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o do_v not_o love_v we_o for_o any_o thing_n in_o we_o there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o we_o when_o god_n first_o love_v we_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v not_o like_o the_o love_n of_o man_n man_n love_v something_o which_o he_o see_v lovely_a but_o god_n see_v nothing_o in_o the_o object_n which_o he_o love_v but_o all_o the_o motive_n and_o argument_n lie_v in_o the_o bosom_n and_o breast_n of_o god_n which_o move_v he_o to_o love_v his_o creature_n man_n can_v love_v before_o he_o have_v some_o lovely_a object_n propose_v to_o he_o but_o god_n love_v before_o we_o have_v either_o be_v or_o holiness_n we_o believe_v in_o god_n love_v he_o and_o be_v make_v lovely_a before_o he_o in_o time_n because_o he_o love_v we_o before_o all_o time_n the_o man_n spiritual_o wise_a do_v see_v his_o happiness_n wrap_v up_o in_o the_o eternal_a bowel_n of_o grace_n and_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o everlasting_a bosom_n of_o unchangeable_a love_n for_o he_o fond_a therefore_o be_v there_o conceit_n shallow_a there_o apprehension_n and_o understanding_n dull_a who_o believe_v that_o any_o thing_n do_v or_o believe_v by_o the_o creature_n in_o time_n can_v be_v the_o primary_n cause_n of_o the_o creature_n salvation_n to_o who_o grace_n be_v give_v for_o salvation_n from_o eternity_n 2_o tim._n 1.2_o etc._n etc._n this_o doctrine_n of_o free_a grace_n do_v overthrow_n and_o annihilate_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a the_o learning_n of_o the_o learned_a the_o righteousness_n of_o he_o who_o be_v most_o righteous_a and_o a_o stranger_n to_o grace_n the_o natural_a man_n with_o his_o best_a sight_n see_v not_o a_o righteousness_n beyond_o the_o righteousness_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n as_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o natural_a man_n so_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v foolishness_n with_o god_n though_o there_o be_v a_o spirit_n in_o a_o man_n by_o which_o he_o may_v have_v great_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o almighty_a which_o give_v understanding_n job_n 32.8_o until_o
the_o consideration_n of_o person_n before_o their_o conversion_n as_o they_o be_v descypher_v to_o we_o and_o characterise_v forth_o in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n the_o scripture_n call_v they_o dead_a man_n they_o be_v rather_o carcase_n than_o man_n they_o have_v the_o shape_n of_o live_a man_n but_o they_o be_v but_o dead_a man_n no_o more_o than_o a_o carcase_n be_v a_o man_n no_o more_o be_v a_o unconverted_a man_n a_o man_n in_o the_o scripture_n sense_n as_o a_o dead_a man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o to_o regain_v life_n so_o we_o who_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o towards_o our_o own_o conversion_n this_o phrase_n we_o have_v in_o the_o precedent_a word_n eph._n 2.1_o you_o have_v he_o quicken_v that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v coll._n 2.13_o that_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o the_o uncircumcision_n of_o our_o flesh_n that_o then_o god_n quicken_v we_o with_o his_o son_n have_v forgive_v we_o all_o our_o trespass_n a_o dead_a man_n hear_v nothing_o see_v nothing_o there_o be_v no_o motion_n in_o he_o at_o all_o so_o it_o be_v with_o a_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n he_o hear_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o grace_n he_o hear_v but_o he_o hear_v not_o he_o see_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o grace_n he_o see_v and_o he_o see_v not_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o move_v one_o foot_n by_o faith_n towards_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n unbelieving_a man_n be_v dead_a if_o we_o view_v they_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o principle_n of_o life_n or_o the_o faculty_n of_o a_o live_a man_n or_o the_o operation_n of_o life_n christ_n be_v the_o principle_n of_o life_n colos_n 3.3_o when_o christ_n who_o be_v your_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o you_o also_o shall_v appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n they_o be_v without_o christ_n and_o therefore_o without_o a_o principle_n of_o life_n 2_o in_o reference_n to_o faculty_n which_o be_v in_o live_a man_n they_o be_v dead_a faculty_n be_v know_v and_o distinguish_v by_o their_o act_n &_o operation_n potentiae_fw-la distinguuntur_fw-la et_fw-la cognoscuntur_fw-la per_fw-la actus_fw-la and_o therefore_o we_o may_v speak_v of_o these_o two_o joint_o and_o together_o as_o in_o a_o live_a man_n there_o be_v faculty_n and_o operation_n of_o life_n so_o there_o be_v faculty_n and_o operation_n of_o life_n in_o a_o man_n who_o be_v spiritual_o alive_a he_o be_v nourish_v 1_o pet._n 2.2_o grow_v psal_n 22.6_o hear_v see_v smell_v cant._n 1.3_o tasi_v the_o sweetness_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o like_a but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o one_o dead_a in_o sin_n and_o unbelief_n he_o have_v no_o spiritual_a faculty_n and_o operation_n of_o life_n he_o lie_v rot_v in_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n without_o these_o if_o we_o play_v upon_o instrument_n of_o music_n or_o shoot_v off_o gun_n in_o his_o ear_n he_o hear_v it_o not_o if_o god_n thunder_v from_o sin_n in_o the_o law_n or_o come_v from_o zion_n with_o the_o music_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o hear_v it_o not_o refuse_v to_o live_v to_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n he_o be_v dead_a qui_fw-la tibi_fw-la recusat_fw-la vivere_fw-la mortuus_fw-la est_fw-la august_n man_n without_o christ_n take_v they_o in_o their_o best_a estate_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o they_o with_o his_o moral_a embellishment_n and_o ornament_n he_o be_v but_o like_o a_o dead_a body_n stick_v with_o flower_n or_o a_o embalm_v carcase_n the_o whole_a world_n of_o unbeliever_n be_v but_o a_o golgotha_n or_o charnel-house_n of_o dry_a bone_n the_o man_n that_o wander_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o understanding_n shall_v remain_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o dead_a pro._n 2.6_o though_o thou_o be_v a_o professor_n of_o christ_n yet_o without_o christ_n thou_o be_v dead_a 1_o tim._n 5.6_o the_o widow_n that_o profess_v christ_n live_v in_o pleasure_n be_v dead_a while_o she_o live_v as_o seneca_n pass_v by_o the_o house_n of_o a_o epicure_n say_v hic_fw-la situs_fw-la est_fw-la he_o that_o live_v here_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v here_o so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o all_o profane_a man_n ignorant_a man_n civilise_a man_n without_o christ_n formalized_a professor_n they_o be_v there_o dead_a where_o they_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a who_o will_v so_o far_o lay_v aside_o his_o reason_n to_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o quicken_v themselves_o to_o a_o spiritual_a life_n again_o as_o the_o scripture_n set_v they_o out_o to_o we_o as_o dead_a man_n so_o the_o scripture_n present_v they_o to_o we_o as_o man_n that_o be_v in_o a_o sleep_n we_o have_v this_o expression_n ephes_n 5.14_o awake_v thou_o that_o sleep_v and_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o christ_n shall_v give_v thou_o light_n the_o knowledge_n that_o a_o man_n have_v of_o jesus_n christ_n before_o his_o conversion_n it_o be_v rather_o as_o the_o dream_n and_o fancy_n of_o a_o sleep_a man_n than_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o a_o wake_v man_n a_o man_n may_v dream_v he_o be_v a_o king_n &_o think_v that_o he_o have_v all_o the_o riches_n in_o the_o world_n but_o when_o he_o awake_v he_o have_v nothing_o because_o he_o do_v but_o dream_n that_o he_o be_v rich_a so_o it_o be_v with_o man_n that_o have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o wrought_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o may_v be_v in_o a_o dream_n and_o have_v false_a persuasion_n that_o christ_n be_v they_o &_o that_o heaven_n be_v they_o with_o all_o the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o eternity_n but_o they_o be_v but_o beggar_n and_o poor_a slave_n all_o the_o while_n they_o be_v likewise_o compare_v to_o mad_a man_n who_o may_v think_v that_o they_o be_v monarch_n and_o in_o a_o palace_n when_o they_o be_v miserable_a creature_n chain_v in_o a_o bedlam_n so_o carnal_a man_n may_v have_v false_a persuasion_n concern_v their_o happiness_n but_o true_a faith_n be_v only_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o as_o man_n out_o of_o their_o wit_n can_v restore_v to_o themselves_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n so_o man_n spiritual_o mad_a can_v bring_v themselves_o to_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n by_o which_o expressioon_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o my_o last_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o word_n in_o which_o it_o do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o wickedness_n and_o deceitfulness_n of_o man_n natural_a heart_n our_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a and_o hypocritical_a and_o therefore_o unfeigned_a faith_n can_v come_v from_o they_o and_o no_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o persuasion_n of_o they_o our_o spirit_n they_o will_v deceive_v we_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o give_v any_o credit_n to_o any_o persuasion_n that_o come_v from_o they_o a_o persuasion_n that_o be_v a_o persuasion_n mere_o of_o our_o own_o spirit_n be_v not_o a_o true_a faith_n or_o persuasion_n who_o will_v believe_v a_o common_a cheater_n cozener_n liar_n or_o impostor_n that_o care_v not_o what_o he_o say_v or_o speak_v the_o heart_n natural_o be_v like_a unto_o such_o a_o impostor_n or_o deceiver_n according_a to_o that_o of_o jeremiah_n jer._n 17.9_o the_o heart_n be_v deceitful_a above_o all_o thing_n and_o desperate_o wicked_a who_o can_v know_v it_o that_o faith_n therefore_o can_v be_v true_a which_o proceed_v from_o a_o natural_a heart_n and_o that_o comfort_n can_v be_v sound_a which_o spring_v from_o such_o a_o faith_n by_o which_o and_o the_o precede_a argument_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o give_v i_o leave_v now_o in_o a_o few_o word_n to_o make_v some_o deduction_n from_o this_o and_o so_o i_o shall_v commend_v what_o i_o have_v deliver_v and_o you_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o she_o almighty_a in_o the_o first_o place_n this_o may_v confute_v the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n arminian●_n and_o popish_a protestant_n that_o conceive_v that_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v something_o to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o his_o own_o justification_n and_o salvation_n this_o that_o have_v be_v deliver_v be_v serious_o weigh_v in_o our_o spirit_n be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v this_o lie_a doctrine_n which_o will_v attribute_v any_o thing_n to_o man_n or_o to_o the_o strength_n wisdom_n understanding_n will_n or_o affection_n of_o the_o natural_a man_n in_o point_n of_o conversion_n justification_n and_o spiritual_a renovation_n one_o of_o the_o ancient_n who_o be_v more_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n then_o any_o of_o his_o fellow_n for_o the_o behold_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n do_v as_o bold_o as_o true_o assert_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v pull_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o free_a grace_n by_o
exalt_v man_n free_a will_n be_v deceive_v with_o a_o ●aereticall_a spirit_n haeretico_fw-la fallitur_fw-la spiritu_fw-la aug._n and_o who_o will_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v so_o far_o blind_v as_o not_o to_o see_v that_o magnifier_n of_o freewill_n do_v overthrow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n which_o paul_n preach_v when_o they_o shall_v hear_v he_o plain_o conclude_v against_o all_o the_o free_a willer_n in_o the_o world_n rom._n 9.16_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o that_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n the_o free_a grace_n and_o mercy_n which_o the_o scripture_n acquaint_v we_o with_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o man_n free_a will_n to_o do_v good_a of_o himself_o as_o dagon_n be_v tumble_v down_o when_o the_o ark_n which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n grace_n in_o he_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o place_n where_o dagon_n be_v set_v up_o so_o when_o god_n grace_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n appear_v it_o tumble_v down_o and_o overthrow_v the_o dagonish_a conceit_n &_o idolatrous_a apprehension_n which_o man_n have_v of_o the_o strength_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o to_o make_v themselves_o happy_a the_o spirit_n of_o man_n true_o persuade_v of_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n and_o their_o own_o weakness_n disclaim_v their_o own_o strength_n and_o sel●e-confidences_n for_o the_o make_n of_o themselves_o good_a and_o cry_v out_o with_o those_o in_o the_o prophet_n lam._n 5.2_o turn_v thou_o we_o unto_o thou_o o_o lord_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v turn_v but_o that_o these_o man_n may_v not_o say_v that_o we_o deal_v unjust_o with_o they_o in_o condemn_v they_o and_o not_o hear_v what_o they_o can_v say_v for_o themselves_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o they_o do_v usual_o think_v for_o themselves_o that_o so_o their_o mouth_n may_v be_v stop_v by_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o light_n may_v shine_v more_o glorious_o by_o the_o dispel_v those_o mist_n fog_n and_o cloud_n of_o error_n which_o will_v darken_v it_o the_o scripture_n that_o some_o of_o they_o object_n against_o this_o truth_n be_v revel_v 22.17_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o bride_n say_v come_v and_o let_v he_o that_o hear_v say_v come_v and_o let_v he_o that_o be_v a_o thirst_n come_v and_o whosoever_o will_v let_v he_o take_v the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o from_o whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v a_o power_n in_o free_a will_n to_o take_v christ_n and_o that_o if_o a_o man_n will_v he_o may_v take_v the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o to_o this_o i_o thus_o answer_v that_o they_o draw_v more_o from_o the_o word_n than_o the_o word_n do_v hold_v forth_o the_o word_n say_v whosoever_o will_v may_v take_v the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o but_o the_o word_n do_v not_o tell_v we_o that_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o will_v this_o of_o himself_o it_o be_v true_a whosoever_o will_n may_v take_v the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o but_o it_o be_v as_o true_a that_o a_o man_n of_o himself_o be_v not_o willing_a god_n alone_o enable_v we_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o take_v this_o water_n of_o life_n free_o phil._n 2.13_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v that_o if_o this_o argument_n be_v well_o weigh_v in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o san_n ctuary_n it_o will_v be_v find_v too_o light_a to_o prove_v that_o for_o which_o it_o be_v allege_v but_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o reply_v again_o and_o to_o demand_v of_o we_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n do_v find_v fault_n with_o man_n for_o unbelief_n reprove_v they_o for_o not_o come_v unto_o christ_n if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a of_o themselves_o to_o believe_v and_o come_v to_o christ_n answ_n why_o shall_v these_o man_n thus_o cavil_v against_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n may_v not_o god_n with_o good_a reason_n and_o without_o offence_n inform_v we_o of_o our_o sin_n though_o we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o forsake_v it_o it_o be_v a_o conclusion_n spiritual_o irrational_a to_o say_v that_o we_o have_v power_n to_o amend_v our_o fault_n because_o god_n do_v reprove_v we_o for_o our_o fault_n in_o these_o reproof_n and_o the_o like_a god_n show_v unto_o we_o his_o goodness_n in_o reprove_v we_o for_o our_o conviction_n he_o do_v not_o inform_v we_o of_o our_o ability_n save_o to_o believe_v for_o our_o conversion_n but_o methinks_v i_o see_v they_o return_v upon_o we_o again_o and_o make_v a_o new_a assault_n by_o another_o argument_n with_o which_o they_o thus_o oppose_v we_o or_o rather_o the_o truth_n and_o power_n of_o god_n grace_n why_o do_v god_n command_v entreat_v &_o beseech_v the_o creature_n to_o believe_v if_o the_o creature_n have_v no_o power_n of_o himself_o to_o believe_v ans_fw-fr passage_n to_o this_o purpose_n which_o we_o fiind_v in_o scripture_n do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o god_n goodness_n to_o the_o creature_n in_o his_o reveal_v will_n and_o the_o creature_n duty_n towards_o god_n they_o do_v not_o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o secret_a effectual_a and_o irresistible_a rev._n 9.19_o will_v of_o god_n concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o a_o creature_n nor_o of_o the_o creature_n power_n in_o himself_o to_o believe_v of_o himself_o the_o conclusion_n of_o these_o man_n from_o such_o precept_n exhortation_n and_o entreaty_n be_v very_o absurd_a and_o irrational_a if_o we_o shall_v serious_o weigh_v they_o in_o the_o scale_n of_o right_a and_o sanctify_a reason_n god_n say_v they_o do_v command_v exhort_v and_o entreat_v man_n to_o believe_v therefore_o man_n be_v able_a of_o themselves_o by_o some_o power_n in_o themselves_o to_o believe_v may_v they_o not_o upon_o as_o good_a ground_n conclude_v that_o a_o carnal_a man_n may_v sulfill_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o be_v save_v by_o do_v of_o the_o law_n see_v he_o be_v command_v in_o scripture_n to_o fulfil_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o exhort_v and_o entreat_v to_o do_v it_o i_o shall_v shut_v up_o this_o use_n with_o a_o sweet_a speech_n of_o a_o devout_a and_o spiritual_a man_n see_v man_n without_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n can_v not_o keep_v that_o salvation_n which_o he_o receive_v how_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a without_o grace_n to_o regain_v that_o salvation_n which_o he_o have_v lose_v cum_fw-la igitur_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la salutem_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n custodire_fw-la quam_fw-la accepit_fw-la quomodo_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la potest_fw-la reparare_fw-la quam_fw-la perdidit_fw-la aug._n in_o epist_n second_o it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o convince_a of_o man_n of_o their_o disability_n to_o will_v their_o own_o justification_n and_o salvation_n what_o god_n account_v wisdom_n that_o when_o man_n look_v on_o it_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n he_o account_v it_o nothing_o but_o folly_n and_o madness_n how_o can_v a_o man_n be_v desirous_a of_o christ_n who_o apprehend_v that_o the_o thing_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o but_o foolishness_n a_o profane_a pope_n sport_v himself_o and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o great_a riches_n he_o have_v get_v by_o profess_v the_o gospel_n in_o a_o carnal_a way_n utter_v these_o word_n what_o great_a riches_n have_v we_o get_v to_o ourselves_o by_o this_o fable_n of_o lesus_fw-la christ_n quantus_fw-la divitias_fw-la lucrati_fw-la sumus_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la fabulâ_fw-la christi_fw-la so_o man_n that_o be_v not_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n to_o behold_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n do_v conceive_v the_o truth_n which_o man_n preach_v concern_v christ_n be_v mere_a fancy_n fable_n madness_n and_o that_o foolishness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n at_o all_o in_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n i_o will_v instance_n but_o in_o one_o or_o two_o particular_n to_o show_v you_o how_o carnal_a reason_n oppose_v grace_n grace_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o be_v will_v he_o harden_v rom._n 9.18_o consider_v how_o carnal_a reason_n oppose_v this_o truth_n of_o god_n suppose_v say_v carnal_a reason_n that_o a_o king_n will_v hate_v some_o of_o his_o subject_n because_o he_o will_v hate_v they_o and_o love_v other_o because_o he_o will_v love_v they_o and_o shall_v give_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o his_o action_n but_o his_o own_o will_n be_v not_o such_o a_o king_n more_o fit_a to_o live_v among_o beast_n then_o to_o reign_v over_o man_n and_o shall_v we_o then_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a god_n do_v love_n and_o elect_v some_o because_o he_o will_v love_v they_o and_o hate_n and_o reprobate_v other_o because_o he_o will_v hate_v they_o thus_o carnal_a man_n measure_v the_o action_n of_o god_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n they_o see_v nothing_o but_o folly_n and_o madness_n in_o that_o by_o which_o god_n discover_v his_o great_a wisdom_n to_o those_o that_o be_v enlighten_v to_o behold_v
of_o god_n so_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a faith_n there_o be_v the_o faith_n or_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n and_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o as_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n be_v false_a dream_n lie_n and_o deceit_n and_o be_v just_o reprehend_v by_o the_o prophet_n jerem._n 23.26_o so_o the_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n they_o be_v false_a dream_n and_o lie_a persuasion_n we_o be_v to_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o they_o as_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v a_o commonly_a so_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o persuasion_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n the_o same_o prophet_n in_o the_o 28._o ver_fw-la compare_v lie_v prophecy_n to_o chaff_n and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o truth_n to_o wheat_n what_o say_v he_o be_v the_o chaff_n to_o the_o wheat_n so_o true_a faith_n be_v like_a unto_o wheat_n and_o faith_n of_o ourselves_o be_v like_a unto_o chaff_n as_o the_o wind_n drive_v away_o the_o chaff_n psalm_n 1.4_o so_o the_o blast_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o the_o wind_n of_o temptation_n will_v blow_v away_o the_o chaff_n of_o a_o false_a faith_n while_o true_a faith_n shall_v be_v preserve_v by_o god_n and_o we_o through_o it_o shall_v be_v preserve_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n wherefore_o brethren_n we_o be_v to_o try_v whether_o or_o no_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v examine_v yourselves_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v a_o touchstone_n to_o try_v gold_n so_o god_n have_v leave_v a_o spiritual_a touchstone_n by_o which_o true_a faith_n may_v be_v try_v as_o there_o be_v counterfeit_a piece_n of_o gold_n which_o can_v be_v hardly_o distinguish_v from_o true_a gold_n until_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o touchstone_n so_o there_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a faith_n which_o can_v hardly_o be_v distinguish_v from_o true_a faith_n until_o it_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a touchstone_n therefore_o it_o will_v be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o to_o try_v what_o faith_n you_o have_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o that_o christ_n be_v you_o and_o that_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n alas_o there_o be_v false_a persuasion_n as_o well_o as_o true_a there_o be_v multitude_n of_o libertine_n who_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n and_o make_v their_o belly_n their_o god_n and_o mind_n earthly_a thing_n phil._n 3._o and_o yet_o have_v strong_a persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n there_o be_v pharisees_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o pharisee_n have_v a_o assurance_n and_o give_v god_n thanks_n for_o it_o too_o luke_n 18.11_o god_n i_o thank_v thou_o i_o be_o not_o as_o other_o man_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n all_o the_o while_n delude_v with_o the_o proud_a conceit_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n the_o unbelieve_a jew_n profess_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o boldness_n and_o confidence_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n john_n 8.41_o we_o have_v one_o father_n even_o god_n and_o yet_o our_o saviour_n tell_v they_o plain_o that_o though_o they_o have_v these_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n yet_o in_o truth_n the_o devil_n be_v their_o father_n you_o be_v say_v he_o vers_n 44._o of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n a_o man_n may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n will_v save_v he_o and_o go_v to_o hell_n and_o be_v damn_v with_o that_o persuasion_n we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o many_o apostate_n who_o have_v make_v a_o profession_n of_o christ_n &_o have_v have_v strong_a persuasion_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n have_v fall_v from_o the_o gospel_n to_o profaneness_n arminianism_n and_o diabolical_a familisme_n our_o bless_a emanuel_n do_v plain_o prove_v this_o truth_n unto_o we_o by_o acquaint_v we_o with_o some_o who_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v before_o his_o judgement-seate_n shall_v be_v confident_a of_o their_o interest_n in_o he_o who_o nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o own_v to_o be_v his_o matth._n 7.21_o 22._o not_o every_o on_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n many_o shall_v say_v unto_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o prophesy_v in_o thy_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n have_v cast_v out_o devil_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n do_v many_o wonderful_a work_n yet_o you_o see_v what_o christ_n will_v profess_v unto_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v true_a you_o have_v a_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v heir_n in_o my_o kingdom_n it_o be_v true_a you_o think_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o any_o in_o the_o world_n be_v save_v but_o i_o tell_v you_o for_o all_o that_o i_o know_v you_o not_o depart_v you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n wherefore_o it_o concern_v all_o man_n to_o know_v whether_o their_o faith_n be_v a_o right_a faith_n self-ish_a faith_n be_v no_o right_a faith_n if_o it_o arise_v from_o no_o high_a a_o fountain_n than_o our_o own_o natural_a reason_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n our_o faith_n be_v from_o ourselves_o and_o we_o may_v carry_v it_o to_o hell_n with_o we_o and_o find_v as_o good_a faith_n there_o in_o the_o devil_n as_o this_o be_v though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o trial_n of_o faith_n do_v chief_o concern_v such_o who_o be_v deceive_v with_o a_o false_a faith_n of_o their_o own_o make_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v very_o advantageous_a for_o the_o true_a saint_n likewise_o to_o try_v their_o faith_n wherefore_o before_o i_o press_v this_o far_a upon_o such_o who_o be_v under_o a_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n unto_o the_o saint_n unto_o this_o purpose_n consider_v that_o that_o man_n who_o have_v true_a faith_n may_v likewise_o have_v much_o false_a faith_n there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o dead_a faith_n in_o he_o who_o have_v a_o live_a faith_n where_o there_o be_v true_a gold_n there_o may_v be_v much_o dross_n and_o in_o that_o professor_n in_o who_o there_o be_v the_o golden_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o drossy_a faith_n which_o be_v nothing_o worth_a a_o christian_a have_v two_o contrary_a nature_n in_o he_o he_o have_v flesh_n as_o well_o as_o spirit_n and_o as_o there_o be_v persuasion_n in_o he_o flow_v from_o the_o spirit_n so_o there_o may_v be_v persuasion_n flow_v from_o the_o flesh_n saint_n sometime_o when_o they_o be_v in_o a_o lukewarm_a and_o backslide_n condition_n be_v apt_a to_o please_v and_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o working_n and_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n and_o they_o may_v find_v that_o much_o of_o their_o joy_n and_o comfort_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o true_a faith_n wrought_v by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n but_o from_o the_o lie_a cheat_a counterfeit_n work_v and_o operation_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n will_v you_o know_v one_o principal_a ground_n and_o reason_n why_o some_o true_a saint_n be_v so_o unfruitful_a deadhearted_n formal_a and_o lukewarm_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v because_o the_o devil_n cheat_v they_o with_o the_o working_n and_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n when_o god_n persuade_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o love_n our_o heart_n be_v inflame_v with_o a_o holy_a love_n to_o god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v or_o suffer_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o when_o we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o the_o work_n of_o our_o own_o spirit_n there_o be_v idleness_n sloth_n neglect_v of_o christian_a duty_n coldness_n formality_n and_o lukewarmness_n so_o that_o there_o be_v little_a difference_n between_o we_o &_o other_o again_o it_o concern_v you_o all_o to_o try_v your_o persuasion_n for_o if_o any_o of_o you_o cozen_v and_o cheat_v yourselves_o with_o the_o persuasion_n of_o you_o own_o spirit_n the_o time_n will_v come_v that_o you_o who_o kindle_v these_o spark_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o your_o own_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o speak_v that_o you_o have_v kindle_v this_o shall_v you_o receive_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n isa_n 50.11_o when_o you_o expect_v heaven_n you_o will_v be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n when_o you_o shall_v be_v confident_a that_o christ_n be_v you_o and_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o plead_v the_o goodness_n of_o your_o cause_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o be_v deceive_v by_o
that_o will_v never_o do_v thou_o good_a it_o will_v never_o bring_v thou_o true_a comfort_n a_o man_n that_o have_v not_o a_o better_a persuasion_n than_o this_o shall_v never_o see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n with_o joy_n 3_o i'faith_o which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o do_v carry_v we_o out_o of_o ourselves_o a_o faithful_a man_n have_v his_o life_n not_o in_o himself_o but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o live_v not_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o first_o but_o second_o adam_n he_o have_v his_o spiritual_a be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v one_o spirit_n he_o see_v the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o he_o and_o the_o father_n in_o he_o through_o his_o son_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 14.20_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a thessalonian_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 1_o thes_n 1.1_o by_o faith_n we_o enjoy_v the_o glory_n of_o union_n the_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o john_n 17._o though_o we_o have_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o equality_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yet_o we_o have_v the_o glory_n of_o likeness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o we_o be_v not_o unite_v to_o the_o father_n so_o immediate_o as_o christ_n be_v by_o himself_o and_o in_o himself_o yet_o we_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o mediante_fw-la christo_fw-la by_o the_o mean_n and_o mediation_n of_o christ_n jesus_n this_o be_v the_o honour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o those_o who_o trust_v by_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 4_o i'faith_o which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o do_v carry_v we_o beyond_o the_o world_n a_o believer_n look_v upon_o christ_n overcome_a the_o world_n for_o he_o do_v through_o faith_n overcome_v the_o world_n by_o he_o 1_o john_n 5.4_o whatsoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcom_v the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcom_v the_o world_n even_o your_o faith_n therefore_o the_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n and_o to_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o their_o foot_n rev._n 12._o because_o be_v through_o faith_n clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v call_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n mal._n 4.2_o they_o trample_v upon_o all_o sublunary_a thing_n as_o worth_n nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o jesus_n christ_n five_o he_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v anoint_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o assure_v of_o his_o abide_n for_o ever_o in_o christ_n 1_o john_n 2.27_o the_o anoint_v which_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o he_o abide_v in_o you_o and_o as_o it_o have_v teach_v you_o you_o shall_v abide_v in_o he_o god_n shall_v lose_v his_o earnest_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o miscarry_v to_o the_o lose_n of_o our_o soul_n after_o we_o have_v this_o earnest_n from_o he_o which_o bind_v he_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n this_o spirit_n persuade_v we_o that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o that_o god_n will_v lose_v none_o of_o his_o son_n he_o that_o have_v this_o spirit_n know_v that_o no_o man_n that_o have_v the_o spirit_n can_v speak_v what_o he_o feel_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n he_o admire_v grace_n when_o he_o look_v on_o god_n reconcile_v in_o christ_n to_o sinner_n &_o look_n on_o himself_o reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o believe_v and_o when_o he_o feel_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n witness_v with_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n he_o can_v go_v bold_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n know_v christ_n as_o his_o elder_a brother_n &_o god_n his_o father_n in_o he_o selfe-deceiving_a hypocrite_n do_v thou_o not_o begin_v to_o be_v convince_v that_o thy_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v concern_v this_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 6._o as_o i_o tell_v you_o even_o now_o there_o be_v never_o true_a faith_n but_o true_a love_n follow_v it_o love_n be_v a_o ndividual_a companion_n of_o faith_n therefore_o such_o as_o have_v faith_n and_o never_o have_v love_n accompany_v of_o it_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o their_o persuasion_n concern_v the_o grace_n and_o goodness_n god_n in_o christ_n be_v but_o a_o carnal_a and_o not_o a_o spiritual_a persuasion_n true_a faith_n work_v by_o love_n therefore_o if_o my_o work_n not_o by_o love_n it_o be_v a_o false_a faith_n this_o be_v a_o undeniable_a argument_n brethren_n mistake_v i_o not_o in_o this_o point_n unto_o which_o i_o now_o be_o speak_v mis-apprehending_a my_o meaning_n as_o if_o i_o bid_v you_o love_v god_n &_o the_o brethren_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v &_o be_v justify_v no_o but_o i_o tell_v you_o now_o that_o where_o true_a lively_a and_o justify_v faith_n be_v there_o love_n will_v follow_v when_o we_o do_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n apprehend_v god_n love_n to_o we_o and_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n in_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o we_o can_v but_o love_n god_n again_o and_o love_n christ_n who_o have_v love_v we_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o so_o that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o true_a love_n there_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v truth_n that_o where_o fire_n be_v there_o will_v be_v heat_n it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o heat_n there_o be_v no_o fire_n so_o if_o where_o true_a faith_n be_v love_n will_v follow_v it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o where_o true_a love_n do_v not_o follow_v there_o true_a faith_n do_v not_o precede_v 1_o john_n 4.19_o we_o love_v he_o because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o he_o that_o love_v not_o god_n have_v not_o apprehend_v god_n love_n to_o he_o as_o far_o as_o thou_o believe_v in_o a_o spiritual_a way_n the_o love_n of_o god_n shall_v constrain_v thou_o to_o love_v god_n tantum_n diligimus_fw-la quantum_fw-la scimus_fw-la love_n be_v answerable_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o knowledge_n he_o that_o have_v paul_n faith_n shall_v have_v his_o love_n we_o say_v that_o love_n be_v the_o loadstone_n of_o love_n magnes_fw-la amoris_fw-la amor_fw-la so_o god_n love_n do_v draw_v forth_o our_o heart_n in_o love_n to_o god_n god_n in_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v present_v unto_o we_o for_o our_o justhification_n do_v appear_v to_o we_o as_o such_o a_o lovely_a object_n that_o we_o can_v but_o love_v he_o the_o greek_n proverb_n be_v that_o love_v be_v wrought_v by_o see_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o when_o by_o faith_n we_o see_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n we_o can_v but_o love_v god_n and_o therefore_o john_n say_v 1_o john_n 4.8_o that_o he_o that_o love_v not_o know_v not_o god_n for_o god_n be_v love_n wherefore_o that_o faith_n by_o which_o thou_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o thy_o soul_n which_o carry_v thou_o not_o back_o again_o in_o love_n to_o god_n i_o dare_v speak_v it_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n that_o that_o persuasion_n be_v not_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n but_o be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o own_o carnal_a and_o natural_a heart_n if_o any_o man_n say_v the_o apostle_n love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n 1_o cor._n 16.22_o let_v he_o not_o be_v account_v as_o one_o inalbo_n fidelium_fw-la in_o the_o list_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v look_v not_o upon_o he_o as_o a_o true_a christian_a peter_n though_o he_o have_v deny_v christ_n not_o long_o before_o yet_o he_o be_v confident_a that_o he_o love_v that_o christ_n who_o he_o have_v deny_v when_o christ_n ask_v he_o simon_n son_n of_o ionas_n love_v thou_o i_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o yea_o lord_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o love_v thou_o john_n 24.15_o when_o christ_n the_o second_o and_o three_o time_n propose_v the_o same_o question_n unto_o he_o he_o remain_v still_o confident_a of_o his_o love_n and_o appeal_v to_o christ_n the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n as_o to_o one_o who_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o love_n v._o 17._o he_o say_v unto_o he_o lord_z thou_o know_v all_o thing_n thou_o know_v that_o i_o love_v thou_o i_o shall_v but_o add_v one_o thing_n more_o because_o i_o shall_v god_n will_v have_v a_o opportunity_n to_o enlarge_v myself_o in_o this_o point_n when_o
he_o intend_v to_o save_v thus_o he_o come_v not_o only_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o language_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n and_o though_o the_o former_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v resist_v this_o latter_a can_v be_v resist_v though_o we_o may_v reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v in_o the_o letter_n and_o some_o common_a working_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o not_o give_v entertainment_n to_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o our_o heart_n in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o when_o it_o come_v down_o with_o power_n to_o open_v the_o heart_n as_o he_o do_v lydia_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prevail_v against_o he_o when_o god_n intend_v powerful_o to_o open_v the_o door_n of_o our_o spirit_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o keep_v it_o lock_v he_o will_v sweet_o force_v we_o to_o open_v the_o door_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n break_v in_o upon_o we_o and_o not_o suffer_v we_o to_o shut_v he_o out_o of_o our_o heart_n and_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o bless_v god_n that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o unless_o it_o be_v so_o no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v ever_o be_v save_v no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v ever_o receive_v christ_n unless_o god_n do_v come_v with_o a_o infinite_a power_n and_o please_a violence_n force_v he_o to_o believe_v if_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o that_o god_n do_v work_v this_o unresistable_a way_n in_o those_o who_o he_o intend_v to_o save_v there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o uncertainty_n whether_o ever_o any_o man_n or_o woman_n shall_v ever_o be_v save_v by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o the_o world_n have_v power_n to_o resist_v grace_n offer_v &_o not_o to_o believe_v at_o all_o than_o this_o must_v follow_v that_o it_o may_v be_v impossible_a after_o the_o fall_n that_o never_o a_o man_n or_o woman_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v ever_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n and_o this_o absurdity_n will_v follow_v from_o it_o that_o god_n after_o man_n fall_n can_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o will_v take_v away_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n because_o he_o can_v not_o know_v but_o that_o every_o man_n in_o the_o world_n may_v resist_v &_o reject_v jesus_n christ_n three_o this_o may_v give_v in_o some_o support_n to_o some_o tremble_a hearer_n who_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o unbelief_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n thou_o be_v ready_a to_o despair_v when_o thou_o apprehend_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o thou_o true_o to_o believe_v of_o thyself_o but_o let_v thy_o spirit_n be_v uphold_v with_o this_o consideration_n that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o give_v thou_o faith_n while_o i_o be_o speak_v of_o faith_n and_o show_v thou_o the_o worker_n of_o it_o it_o may_v be_v thou_o think_v that_o thou_o shall_v never_o have_v joy_n comfort_n and_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n but_o by_o believe_v and_o yet_o thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v and_o therefore_o comfort_v thyself_o in_o this_o though_o thou_o can_v do_v nothing_o god_n be_v able_a to_o enable_v thou_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n phil._n 4.13_o as_o the_o martyr_n when_o some_o tell_v he_o that_o when_o he_o come_v to_o suffer_v he_o will_v rather_o deny_v his_o tenet_n then_o burn_v it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o i_o of_o myself_o shall_v do_v so_o but_o god_n be_v able_a to_o enable_v i_o so_o though_o thou_o know_v that_o thou_o of_o thyself_o can_v not_o believe_v know_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o enable_v thou_o present_o to_o believe_v thou_o that_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o thy_o unbelieving_a heart_n and_o of_o that_o mountain_n of_o infidelity_n that_o lie_v upon_o thy_o spirit_n and_o that_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o say_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v of_o myself_o while_o the_o world_n stand_v know_v that_o god_n be_v ablde_v in_o this_o momentt_n to_o give_v thou_o faith_n four_o this_o may_v inform_v we_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a faith_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o hypocritical_a formalist_n the_o hypocrite_n not_o be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o own_o disability_n for_o the_o work_n of_o save_a faith_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n do_v apprehend_v that_o he_o can_v do_v the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n like_o the_o carnal_a hearer_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6.28_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v that_o we_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o when_o he_o apprehend_v that_o he_o do_v believe_v he_o glori_v more_o in_o his_o own_o act_n labouring_n and_o endeavour_n by_o which_o he_o conceive_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v faith_n then_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v no_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o almightiness_n of_o god_n powerful_a &_o irresistible_a grace_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o a_o true_a son_n of_o abraham_n his_o faith_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n have_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a tincture_n in_o it_o from_o that_o spirit_n by_o who_o it_o be_v wrought_v he_o prize_v not_o his_o faith_n of_o the_o natural_a spirit_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o heavenly_a spirit_n he_o can_v set_v his_o seal_n to_o that_o truth_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6.65_o that_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o he_o except_o it_o be_v give_v a_o unto_o he_o of_o his_o father_n he_o be_v not_o proud_a of_o his_o faith_n because_o he_o look_v upon_o it_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n do_v account_v it_o rather_o god_n work_v then_o his_o own_o according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6._o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v upon_o which_o word_n one_o of_o the_o ancient_n have_v this_o observation_n non_fw-la dixit_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la vestrum_fw-la sed_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la dei_fw-la he_o say_v not_o this_o be_v your_o work_n but_o the_o work_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n mar._n 4.11_o to_o you_o say_v he_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v without_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o parable_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v a_o mystery_n and_o parable_n unto_o many_o until_o the_o lord_n do_v give_v we_o the_o precious_a gift_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o understand_v these_o mystery_n of_o god_n so_o that_o he_o that_o true_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v look_v upon_o his_o spiritual_a knowledge_n as_o a_o gift_n what_o be_v complete_a and_o perfect_a faith_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v that_o all_o our_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n and_o faith_n itself_o be_v free_o give_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n quae_fw-la est_fw-la plena_fw-la et_fw-la perfecta_fw-la fides_fw-la quae_fw-la credit_n ex_fw-la deo_fw-la et_fw-la omne_fw-la bona_fw-la nostra_fw-la et_fw-la ipsam_fw-la fidem_fw-la aug._n five_o this_o may_v convince_v those_o of_o their_o error_n who_o be_v convince_v of_o sin_n do_v refuse_v to_o turn_v into_o the_o true_a way_n of_o salvation_n by_o believe_v suppose_v in_o the_o pride_n and_o ignorance_n of_o their_o heart_n that_o this_o be_v too_o short_a and_o near_o a_o way_n to_o justification_n and_o happiness_n these_o will_v first_o do_v good_a work_n get_v strength_n against_o all_o their_o corruption_n be_v make_v holy_a &_o sanctify_a man_n and_o then_o they_o think_v that_o they_o may_v safe_o make_v bold_a to_o lay_v hold_n of_o some_o promise_n of_o grace_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v thus_o with_o i_o when_o god_n do_v at_o first_o begin_v to_o awaken_v my_o conscience_n with_o the_o dreadful_a sight_n of_o my_o sin_n and_o course_n of_o profaneness_n in_o which_o i_o have_v live_v and_o some_o month_n i_o go_v in_o this_o way_n never_o in_o the_o spirit_n consider_v that_o the_o object_n of_o god_n justify_v grace_n be_v a_o ungodly_a man_n and_o a_o sinner_n and_o not_o know_v that_o spiritual_a regeneration_n be_v not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n though_o i_o can_v then_o in_o a_o carnal_a way_n as_o many_o blind_a protestant_n now_o can_v have_v speak_v and_o preach_v more_o glorious_o with_o thetoricall_a word_n and_o flourish_a expression_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n without_o work_n than_o now_o i_o can_v or_o will_n but_o as_o god_n who_o from_o all_o eternity_n have_v single_v i_o out_o unto_o salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n be_v please_v to_o convince_v
the_o increase_n of_o faith_n as_o a_o gift_n cease_v from_o our_o own_o work_n understanding_n and_o ability_n yet_o here_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v mistake_v let_v i_o add_v this_o caution_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o neglect_v gospel-duty_n by_o hear_v of_o gospel-promise_n promise_n shall_v not_o prove_v occasion_n of_o sloth_n to_o to_o the_o faithful_a but_o shall_v be_v argument_n and_o incentives_n to_o spiritual_a activity_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o have_v these_o promise_n let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthivesse_n etc._n etc._n seven_o let_v we_o prize_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n we_o prize_v gift_n because_o there_o be_v usual_o some_o preciousness_n and_o goodness_n in_o they_o or_o else_o for_o the_o giver_n sake_n faith_n be_v precious_a in_o itself_o 1_o pet._n 1.1_o god_n gift_n have_v something_o of_o his_o own_o goodness_n in_o they_o and_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v prize_v because_o it_o be_v from_o he_o it_o be_v say_v of_o elkanah_n that_o he_o give_v portion_n to_o peninnah_n and_o her_o son_n and_o daughtea_n but_o unto_o hannah_n he_o give_v a_o worthy_a portion_n for_o he_o love_v she_o 1_o sam._n 1.4_o 5._o so_o god_n do_v give_v portion_n to_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n but_o his_o worthy_a portion_n of_o love_n to_o his_o saint_n through_o faith_n and_o therefore_o prize_v it_o imitate_v those_o bless_a soul_n who_o have_v show_v unto_o we_o by_o their_o good_a example_n how_o they_o prize_v faith_n who_o be_v content_v to_o part_n rather_o with_o their_o honour_n pleasure_n riches_n preferment_n yea_o their_o own_o life_n then_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n they_o love_v not_o their_o life_n unto_o the_o death_n rev._n 8_o faith_n be_v a_o great_a gift_n which_o if_o thou_o have_v it_o thou_o know_v that_o thou_o have_v free_o receive_v it_o fides_n magnum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la sihabes_fw-la profecto_fw-la accepisti_fw-la aug._n and_o therefore_o look_v up_o unto_o god_n for_o wretched_a unbelieving_a creature_n think_v that_o they_o may_v receive_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n which_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o deserve_v as_o a_o reward_n this_o may_v strengthen_v faith_n much_o when_o we_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n beg_v faith_n for_o poor_a sinner_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n jeremiah_n make_v use_v of_o such_o a_o argument_n to_o strengthen_v his_o faith_n jer._n 14.7_o though_o our_o iniquity_n do_v testify_v against_o we_o do_v for_o thy_o name_n sake_n o_o the_o happiness_n of_o those_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o free_a grace_n they_o may_v expect_v all_o thing_n for_o themselves_o and_o other_o as_o free_a gift_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o though_o they_o can_v expect_v nothing_o as_o deserve_a wage_n last_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n for_o his_o unspcakable_a grace_n in_o give_v faith_n unto_o thou_o my_o faith_n o_o lord_n say_v one_o have_v call_v upon_o thou_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v unto_o i_o and_o which_o thou_o have_v inspire_v into_o i_o invovavit_n te_fw-mi domine_fw-la fides_fw-la mea_fw-la quam_fw-la dedisti_fw-la mihi_fw-la quam_fw-la inspirasti_fw-la mihi_fw-la aug._n cons_n so_o bless_v god_n with_o that_o faith_n and_o for_o that_o faith_n which_o god_n have_v free_o give_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n to_o know_v god_n 1_o joh._n 5.20_o and_o this_o knowledge_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la quam_fw-la vera_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la cognitio_fw-la cyp._n and_o therefore_o bless_v god_n in_o the_o son_n for_o this_o faith_n thou_o may_v have_v lie_v in_o the_o dark_a dungeon_n of_o a_o unbelieve_a heart_n to_o this_o day_n and_o thou_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o wonderful_a light_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n through_o faith_n the_o son_n have_v make_v thou_o free_a and_o thou_o be_v free_a indeed_o by_o believe_v be_v free_a in_o render_v large_o the_o tribute_n of_o praise_n to_o he_o who_o through_o faith_n have_v knock_v off_o the_o shackle_n &_o fetter_n of_o bondage_n from_o thy_o soul_n give_v thyself_o to_o he_o who_o have_v give_v himself_o and_o his_o son_n to_o thou_o through_o faith_n and_o begin_v to_o live_v the_o heavenly_a life_n of_o glory_n in_o give_v glory_n and_o praise_n to_o he_o who_o have_v give_v thou_o the_o glory_n of_o union_n with_o himself_o in_o his_o son_n through_o faith_n joh._n 17._o give_v praise_n to_o the_o king_n of_o zion_n who_o have_v redeem_v thou_o to_o god_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o make_v thou_o a_o king_n and_o priest_n and_o have_v assure_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v reign_v upon_o the_o earth_n say_v of_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n as_o jacob_n of_o his_o child_n these_o be_v child_n which_o god_n have_v gracious_o give_v unto_o his_o servant_n ascribe_v nothing_o to_o thyself_o but_o all_o to_o he_o from_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n salvation_n to_o our_o god_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n and_o sing_v in_o faith_n with_o all_o saint_n who_o love_n christ_n in_o sincerity_n revel_v 6.12_o blessing_n and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o may_v be_v unto_o our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n sermon_n vi._n the_o heaven-borne_a man_n sin_v not_o 1_o john_n 3.9_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n do_v not_o commit_v sin_n for_o his_o seed_n remain_v in_o he_o and_o he_o can_v sin_v because_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n god_n in_o his_o grace_n have_v shine_v into_o my_o spirit_n by_o read_v of_o these_o word_n which_o have_v incline_v my_o spirit_n to_o speak_v from_o these_o word_n the_o truth_n of_o christ_n be_v likely_a to_o prove_v powerful_a upon_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o hearer_n when_o they_o be_v second_v with_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o speaker_n i_o be_o therefore_o embolden_v to_o acquaint_v you_o with_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v wrap_v up_o in_o these_o word_n though_o i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o adversary_n and_o opposer_n of_o this_o truth_n 2_o cor._n 4.13_o we_o believe_v &_o therefore_o we_o speak_v say_v the_o apostle_n so_o i_o do_v in_o spirit_n believe_v what_o i_o shall_v speak_v and_o therefore_o i_o be_o resolve_v to_o speak_v it_o forth_o plain_o and_o you_o be_v engage_v to_o hear_v i_o patient_o the_o word_n be_v a_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o precede_a premise_n in_o the_o precedent_a word_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v two_o proposition_n first_o that_o he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n second_o that_o christ_n have_v appear_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o he_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n can_v sin_v not_o have_v his_o be_v in_o the_o devil_n but_o in_o christ_n who_o destroy_v sin_n in_o this_o verse_n there_o be_v these_o particular_a observation_n which_o at_o the_o first_o view_n may_v present_v themselves_o unto_o we_o 1._o a_o character_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a he_o be_v one_o who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n 2._o the_o property_n of_o this_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n he_o do_v not_o commit_v sin_n 3._o a_o reason_n why_o he_o can_v commit_v sin_n to_o wit_n because_o his_o seed_n remain_v in_o he_o 4._o his_o purity_n he_o do_v not_o only_o not_o commit_v sin_n but_o he_o sin_v not_o at_o all_o 5._o this_o assert_v by_o lay_v down_o the_o impossibility_n of_o his_o sin_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o can_v possible_o sin_v 6._o this_o be_v further_a prove_v by_o his_o excellent_a &_o glorious_a condition_n he_o can_v sin_v because_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n first_o from_o the_o person_n who_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n we_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o folly_n and_o bedlam-madnesse_n of_o some_o who_o will_v be_v account_v professor_n and_o preacher_n of_o a_o spiritual_a gospel_n who_o gospel_n and_o mystery_n of_o error_n do_v make_v the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n to_o be_v god_n confound_a the_o glorious_a nature_n of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n with_o the_o new_a creature_n the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o overthrow_v this_o bedlam-divinity_n by_o these_o expression_n in_o which_o he_o do_v make_v a_o difference_n between_o god_n and_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o he_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v bear_v in_o time_n but_o god_n be_v from_o eternity_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n can_v be_v god_n the_o place_n which_o they_o pervert_v be_v in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 6.17_o he_o which_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o spirit_n answ_n christ_n and_o the_o man_n join_v unto_o he_o be_v
the_o scripture_n by_o which_o error_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o truth_n exalt_v wherefore_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o more_o full_o my_o plain_a and_o naked_a meaning_n in_o this_o point_n and_o then_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o scripture_n will_v come_v in_o to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n first_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o man_n in_o scripture_n be_v consider_v physical_o as_o he_o have_v a_o rational_a spirit_n join_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n and_o when_o we_o thus_o speak_v of_o man_n we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o every_o man_n sin_v lot_n david_n peter_n paul_n and_o the_o like_a according_a to_o that_o of_o james_n jam._n 3.2_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o second_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o man_n theological_o and_o if_o we_o thus_o consider_v he_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v find_v that_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n every_o christian_a man_n have_v two_o man_n in_o he_o a_o new_a man_n and_z and_z a_o old_a man_n and_o these_o two_o of_o contrary_a nature_n and_o operation_n and_o as_o sometime_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o man_n as_o have_v two_o physical_a being_n in_o he_o and_o do_v attribute_n unto_o he_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a part_n as_o when_o we_o say_v a_o man_n hear_v see_v walk_v understand_v and_o the_o like_a and_o then_o again_o do_v distinguish_v these_o two_o attribute_v to_o the_o body_n what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o body_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o soul_n so_o sometime_o the_o scripture_n do_v speak_v of_o man_n as_o have_v two_o contrary_a nature_n and_o then_o do_v again_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o new_a or_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o that_o and_o that_o unto_o the_o sinful_a and_o fleshly_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o it_o in_o the_o old_a and_o unregenerate_v nature_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o the_o seed_n and_o spawn_n of_o all_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n and_o in_o the_o regenerate_v part_n or_o new_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o purity_n and_o holiness_n in_o this_o nature_n he_o do_v not_o sin_n nor_o can_v sin_v as_o he_o can_v do_v good_a in_o the_o other_o nature_n so_o that_o i_o apprehend_v that_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v not_o sinful_a in_o his_o nature_n or_o in_o any_o of_o his_o act_n working_n or_o operation_n he_o be_v light_a in_o his_o understanding_n holy_a in_o his_o will_n pure_a in_o his_o thought_n sanctify_v in_o his_o affection_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o bullinger_n that_o god_n do_v allude_v to_o the_o nature_n o●_n seed_n the_o nature_n of_o which_o be_v retain_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o spring_v out_o of_o it_o alludit_fw-la ad_fw-la seminis_fw-la naturam_fw-la quam_fw-la ea_fw-la referunt_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la nascuntur_fw-la the_o seed_n be_v holy_a that_o which_o arise_v from_o it_o be_v likewise_o holy_a as_o our_o saviour_n do_v inform_v we_o john_n 3.6_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o theflesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n i●_n spirit_n not_o that_o the_o newborn_a man_n be_v whole_o turn_v into_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o spirit_n as_o some_o delude_v and_o delude_a soiry_n have_v affirm_v but_o the_o abstract_n be_v take_v for_o the_o concrete_a which_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o scripture_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v spirit_n because_o it_o be_v make_v spiritual_a by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o it_o have_v acquaint_v you_o with_o my_o meaning_n and_o give_v you_o the_o spiritual_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n i_o shall_v draw_v the_o marrow_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o particular_n which_o i_o name_v into_o one_o conclusion_n which_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v good_a by_o spiritual_a argument_n which_o i_o shall_v draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o spiritual_a reason_n the_o conclusion_n be_v this_o the_o spiritual_a man_n or_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n in_o his_o spiritual_a and_o godly_a nature_n motion_n &_o act_n towards_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v sin_v arg._n 1._o his_o seed_n be_v holy_a in_o he_o therefore_o his_o fruit_n be_v holy_a this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n his_o seed_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v sin_v christ_n be_v the_o seed_n in_o we_o 1_o pet._n 1.23_o every_o true_a christian_a can_v say_v with_o paul_n gal._n 2.20_o that_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o and_o christ_n in_o we_o do_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o live_v sinful_o but_o make_v we_o to_o live_v holy_o he_o become_v the_o principle_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o sanctification_n in_o we_o a_o christian_a be_v powerful_o act_v by_o a_o holy_a principle_n and_o therefore_o his_o act_n be_v holy_a christ_n be_v a_o pure_a fountain_n of_o holiness_n in_o we_o as_o well_o to_o fill_v our_o soul_n with_o the_o stream_n of_o holiness_n by_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o uncleaness_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o our_o justification_n and_o this_o fountain_n can_v send_v forth_o at_o the_o same_o place_n sweet_a water_n and_o bitter_a jam._n 3.11_o the_o stream_n do_v retain_v the_o pure_a nature_n of_o the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o they_o flow_v reader_n i_o must_v inform_v thou_o that_o since_o i_o preach_v this_o sermon_n i_o receive_v objection_n from_o my_o learned_a friend_n mr._n r._n l._n against_o my_o argument_n which_o i_o think_v good_a to_o print_v with_o my_o argument_n ob._n against_o this_o argument_n this_o be_v object_v the_o argument_n from_o the_o seed_n to_o the_o fruit_n will_v not_o follow_v unless_o the_o soil_n be_v also_o answerable_a otherwise_o sorry_a fruit_n may_v come_v from_o good_a seed_n answ_n as_o there_o be_v good_a seed_n so_o there_o be_v a_o good_a soil_n the_o spiritual_a heart_n and_o therefore_o the_o argument_n will_v follow_v this_o i_o prove_v ezek._n 36.26_o a_o new_a heart_n will_v i_o give_v you_o and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o put_v within_o you_o and_o i_o will_v take_v away_o the_o stony_a heart_n out_o of_o your_o flesh_n and_o will_v give_v you_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n and_o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n within_o you_o and_o cause_v you_o to_o walk_v in_o my_o statute_n and_o you_o shall_v keep_v my_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o the_o new_a heart_n of_o flesh_n be_v a_o good_a soil_n and_o because_o god_n do_v promise_v his_o spirit_n and_o a_o new_a heart_n therefore_o see_v what_o shall_v follow_v the_o good_a fruit_n speak_v of_o we_o shall_v keep_v his_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o arg._n 2._o god_n can_v be_v the_o author_n &_o worker_n of_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n but_o god_n do_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o good_a work_n wrought_v in_o the_o saint_n and_o therefore_o these_o work_n be_v not_o sin_n isa_n 26.12_o the_o saint_n do_v profess_v that_o god_n have_v wrought_v all_o their_o work_n in_o they_o and_o this_o likewise_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o do_v prove_v that_o do_n of_o evil_a be_v sin_n because_o it_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o work_n of_o righteousness_n be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v of_o god_n object_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o their_o whole_a moral_a nature_n but_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la by_o accident_n through_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o circumstance_n answ_n every_o moral_a action_n command_v or_o forbid_v of_o god_n be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_a if_o these_o be_v good_a and_o no_o sin_n than_o i_o have_v what_o i_o contend_v for_o if_o evil_a acquit_v god_n from_o be_v the_o author_n of_o evil_a who_o do_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o opposition_n to_o satan_n and_o his_o work_n if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a or_o both_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n i_o shall_v hearken_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o say_v they_o be_v sin_n by_o accident_n and_o if_o they_o be_v so_o by_o accident_n they_o be_v sin_n and_o still_o you_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o i_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o sin_n in_o their_o nature_n nor_o by_o accident_n but_o good_a and_o therefore_o until_o you_o prove_v what_o you_o say_v i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o my_o argument_n be_v unshaken_a by_o this_o objection_n object_n 2._o faith_n and_o love_n in_o their_o whole_a moral_a abstract_n nature_n be_v not_o sin_n but_o consider_v in_o the_o concrete_a and_o act_v by_o we_o answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v of_o they_o in_o the_o concrete_a as_o act_v by_o we_o and_o do_v bid_v we_o try_v
ourselves_o by_o our_o faith_n love_n and_o work_v of_o righteousness_n and_o say_v vers_fw-la 19_o that_o hereby_o we_o assure_v ourselves_o before_o god_n therefore_o this_o distinction_n be_v of_o no_o validity_n in_o this_o place_n though_o some_o think_v that_o it_o will_v answer_v all_o our_o argument_n argu._n 3_o the_o old_a man_n and_o the_o new_a man_n be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o contrary_a nature_n and_o operation_n but_o if_o the_o new_a man_n be_v sinful_a and_o his_o operation_n sinful_a the_o new_a man_n will_v be_v confound_v with_o the_o old_a man_n who_o be_v sinful_a in_o himself_o and_o his_o operation_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o scripture_n the_o old_a man_n be_v corrupt_v according_a to_o deceitful_a lust_n but_o the_o new_a man_n after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n eph._n 4.22.24_o and_o speak_v of_o these_o in_o the_o concrete_a as_o in_o we_o eph._n 5.8_o 9_o he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n walk_v as_o child_n of_o the_o light_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n argu._n 4._o those_o work_n which_o be_v commend_v by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o good_a work_n be_v good_a work_n but_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v commend_v for_o good_a work_n therefore_o they_o be_v good_a revel_v 2.2_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o he_o know_v the_o work_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o his_o labour_n and_o patience_n that_o be_v he_o approve_v or_o commend_v his_o work_n and_o so_o rev._n 3.8_o it_o will_v be_v a_o disparagement_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n to_o commend_v sin_n or_o sinful_a work_n for_o good_a work_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v good_a work_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o the_o work_v which_o be_v wrought_v by_o a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v good_a work_n obj._n they_o be_v wash_v from_o their_o pollution_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb._n answ_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o new_a man_n and_o his_o work_n we_o look_v not_o upon_o he_o or_o his_o work_n but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v wash_v from_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o we_o be_v well_o please_v unto_o god_n the_o worker_n through_o jesus_n christ_n through_o who_o he_o do_v work_v they_o in_o we_o arg._n 5._o christ_n do_v not_o present_a that_o which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v accept_v but_o he_o present_v our_o work_n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o we_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n if_o christ_n do_v present_v any_o work_n that_o be_v sinful_a he_o may_v present_v our_o sinful_a work_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o there_o be_v something_o which_o be_v good_a which_o be_v present_v as_o well_o as_o something_o in_o we_o which_o be_v sinful_a which_o be_v forgive_v malum_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la defectu_fw-la the_o less_o defect_n do_v make_v a_o thing_n evil_a and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o defect_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n to_o make_v it_o sin_n and_o evil_a what_o reason_n can_v any_o man_n give_v from_o scripture_n why_o every_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v present_v and_o accept_v as_o well_o as_o those_o sin_n which_o they_o call_v good_a work_n arg._n 6._o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o work_n of_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n neither_o sinful_a or_o sin_n but_o work_n of_o righteousness_n faith_n be_v call_v righteousness_n rom._n 4._o and_o rom._n 5._o &_o the_o last_o paul_n call_v the_o sincerity_n which_o be_v in_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o concrete_a godly_a sincerity_n 2_o cor._n 1.12_o paul_n pray_v that_o grace_n may_v be_v with_o all_o they_o who_o love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o corruption_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v he_o pray_v for_o such_o who_o he_o think_v be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v or_o for_o all_o true_a saint_n who_o he_o do_v know_v do_v love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o incorruption_n reply_n if_o they_o be_v consider_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v so_o they_o be_v not_o evil_a but_o as_o they_o be_v do_v by_o we_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v they_o menstruous_a rag_n even_o our_o very_a righteousness_n not_o our_o old_a man_n only_o isa_n 64.6_o answ_n the_o prophet_n do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o a_o man_n underthe_a covenant_n of_o grace_n consider_v under_o that_o covenant_n for_o in_o the_o precedent_a verse_n he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o such_o a_o man_n be_v not_o as_o a_o menstruous_a rag_n thou_o meet_v he_o that_o rejoy_v and_o work_v righteousness_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o man_n as_o look_v upon_o under_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o of_o their_o work_n as_o do_v under_o and_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o that_o covenant_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n our_o iniquity_n like_o the_o wind_n have_v take_v we_o away_o and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o call_v upon_o thy_o name_n that_o stir_v up_o himself_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o thou_o for_o thou_o have_v hide_v thy_o face_n from_o we_o and_o we_o be_v consume_v because_o of_o our_o iniquity_n we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o this_o truth_n by_o expression_n which_o holy_a man_n have_v make_v use_n of_o in_o confess_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o jewish_a national_a covenant_n but_o by_o those_o passage_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o man_n as_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o his_o work_n wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n 7_o arg._n god_n do_v remember_v the_o work_n of_o his_o saint_n heb._n 6.10_o god_n be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o love_n say_v the_o apostle_n he_o will_v remember_v the_o good_a work_n of_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n the_o good_a work_n of_o some_o be_v manifest_a beforehand_o and_o they_o that_o be_v otherwise_o can_v be_v hide_v 1_o tim._n 5.15_o they_o can_v for_o ever_o be_v hide_v because_o god_n will_v make_v mention_n of_o they_o at_o that_o day_n but_o he_o have_v engage_v himself_o by_o oath_n to_o remember_v our_o sin_n and_o sinful_a action_n hebr._n 8._o and_o therefore_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a arg._n 8._o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o the_o work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n or_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o sin_n because_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n but_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o these_o this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 5.22_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n against_o such_o there_o be_v no_o law_n object_n they_o be_v here_o consider_v as_o they_o be_v precise_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o and_o so_o they_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o consider_v they_o as_o act_v by_o we_o even_o with_o the_o spirit_n assistance_n and_o so_o they_o be_v defective_a and_o sinful_a answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o tully_n of_o his_o orator_n plato_n of_o his_o commonwealth_n &_o moor_n of_o his_o utopia_n as_o of_o thing_n no_o where_n to_o be_v find_v but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n as_o in_o we_o and_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o as_o in_o we_o and_o do_v plain_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o we_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n hereafter_o to_o speak_v more_o full_o of_o some_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v speak_v plain_o of_o these_o work_v as_o do_v in_o we_o that_o so_o i_o may_v break_v the_o neck_n of_o this_o distinction_n which_o be_v make_v as_o a_o catholicon_n or_o salve_v for_o every_o sore_a arg._n 9_o god_n do_v give_v a_o testimony_n concern_v his_o saint_n that_o they_o be_v righteous_a and_o holy_a which_o be_v speak_v in_o reference_n to_o their_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o act_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v righteous_a and_o holy_a the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v according_a to_o truth_n he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n do_v not_o god_n give_v this_o
sanctification_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v acquit_v from_o our_o sin_n by_o it_o which_o we_o have_v commit_v upon_o earth_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 2._o we_o be_v justify_v before_o sanctification_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o because_o that_o be_v do_v before_o the_o other_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o 3._o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o sanctification_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o whole_o sanctify_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n in_o the_o man_n our_o good_a work_n will_v not_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o bad_a work_n a_o traitor_n for_o a_o act_n of_o treason_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o his_o prince_n though_o he_o have_v do_v he_o much_o good_a service_n if_o a_o man_n will_v seek_v justification_n by_o the_o law_n who_o be_v sanctify_v in_o part_n the_o law_n will_v condemn_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n in_o his_o unregenerate_v part_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o any_o sufficiency_n in_o his_o sanctification_n to_o free_v he_o from_o condemnation_n for_o his_o sin_n in_o the_o unregenerate_v part_n arg._n 19_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o justify_v man_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v make_v divers_a place_n of_o scripture_n irreconcilable_a man_n shall_v never_o be_v well_o able_a to_o reconcile_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o swallow_v this_o as_o a_o truth_n that_o whatsoever_o work_n be_v now_o do_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a for_o instance_n in_o one_o place_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o disclaim_v our_o work_n and_o to_o account_v all_o our_o righteousness_n as_o filthy_a rag_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v from_o all_o iniquity_n that_o we_o may_v be_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n tit._n 2._o and_o we_o be_v the_o work-manship_a of_o god_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o good_a work_n eph._n 2._o by_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v they_o be_v easy_o reconcileable_a to_o wit_n by_o distinguish_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v concern_v good_a work_n thus_o that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n under_o the_o law_n be_v but_o splendid_a and_o shine_a sin_n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v good_a and_o not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a in_o their_o nature_n not_o that_o the_o scripture_n make_v these_o good_a work_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o spiritual_a man_n the_o cause_n or_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o consequent_n of_o our_o justification_n it_o be_v a_o speech_n of_o luther_n worthy_a to_o be_v write_v in_o letter_n of_o gold_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o it_o be_v of_o no_o worth_n in_o comparison_n of_o good_a work_n flow_v from_o faith_n and_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n which_o how_o it_o can_v be_v make_v good_a i_o know_v not_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o he_o and_o some_o other_o protestant_a writer_n affirm_v that_o omne_fw-la bonum_fw-la secundum_fw-la judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la mortale_fw-la peccatum_fw-la every_o good_a work_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n that_o which_o be_v moral_o evil_a be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o moral_o evil_a that_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n which_o be_v moral_o evil_a i_o have_v know_v some_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o have_v fall_v to_o familisme_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n and_o be_v ask_v why_o they_o do_v leave_v the_o gospel_n they_o have_v answer_v that_o they_o can_v never_o reconcile_v the_o scripture_n concern_v work_n to_o other_o place_n while_o they_o be_v professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n their_o meaning_n be_v while_o they_o be_v professor_n upon_o these_o principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o as_o sin_n and_o sinful_a that_o which_o be_v frequent_o affert_v by_o some_o mr._n eatoon_n honycomb_n and_o other_o that_o they_o be_v good_a to_o men-ward_n will_v not_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o a_o meek_a &_o quiet_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a price_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 3.4_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o his_o fincerity_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 2.17_o and_o john_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.22_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o receive_v of_o he_o because_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a believe_v only_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o next_o verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o love_v one_o another_o and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v usual_o bring_v against_o this_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o do_v as_o in_o god_n precept_n or_o command_v and_o not_o as_o do_v by_o we_o he_o say_v that_o we_o receive_v what_o we_o ask_v because_o we_o do_v what_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n i_o must_v profess_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o this_o distinction_n have_v give_v i_o a_o great_a light_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o this_o i_o be_o inform_v that_o i_o be_o justify_v without_o holiness_n or_o sanctification_n and_o yet_o that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n heb._n 12.14_o arg._n 20._o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v overthrow_v the_o distinction_n which_o be_v warrant_v by_o many_o thousand_o place_n of_o scripture_n between_o good_a work_n and_o bad_a work_n and_o do_v draw_v a_o curse_n upon_o the_o doer_n of_o it_o can_v evil_a be_v good_a or_o good_a evil_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n that_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n that_o put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a and_o sweet_a for_o bitter_a isa_n 5.20_o what_o else_o do_v they_o do_v who_o plainley_o aver_v that_o every_o good_a work_n be_v evil_a object_n do_v we_o deny_v the_o difference_n between_o white_a and_o black_a because_o we_o say_v that_o in_o most_o white_a body_n there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o some_o blackness_n with_o the_o whiteness_n etc._n etc._n answ_n if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n that_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a shall_v be_v make_v fleshly_a by_o it_o there_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v some_o strength_n in_o this_o objection_n but_o until_o that_o such_o a_o mixture_n be_v prove_v by_o plain_a scripture_n we_o shall_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o affirm_v that_o such_o similitude_n which_o have_v not_o their_o foundation_n upon_o a_o principle_n of_o truth_n do_v prove_v nothing_o arg._n 21._o it_o take_v away_o the_o difference_n between_o a_o sanctify_a and_o unsanctified_a man_n which_o be_v a_o distinction_n which_o do_v stand_v firm_a upon_o the_o basis_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o lay_v down_o this_o distinction_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o where_o he_o inform_v we_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o corinthian_n before_o conversion_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v thief_n adulteress_n and_o the_o like_a such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o and_o then_o set_v forth_o their_o bless_a condition_n after_o conversion_n but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v and_o do_v second_o this_o truth_n with_o his_o own_o experience_n acknowleding_n that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o himself_o after_o conversion_n by_o sanctification_n 1_o tim._n 1._o i_o be_v say_v he_o a_o persecuter_n a_o blasphemer_n injurious_a but_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v exceed_v abundant_a with_o 〈…〉_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n not_o with_o 〈…〉_o but_o love_v also_o if_o god_n have_v pull_v you_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n of_o sin_n and_o draw_v you_o as_o firebrand_n out_o of_o hell_n and_o bring_v you_o into_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o his_o son_n you_o be_v able_a to_o profess_v the_o same_o sanctify_a change_n in_o yourselves_o it_o be_v a_o dead_a
son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o 1_o john_n 5.20.3_o they_o be_v all_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n but_o we_o can_v bless_v god_n who_o through_o jesus_n christ_n have_v bring_v we_o into_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n 4._o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o be_v righteous_a but_o harken_v unto_o the_o speech_n of_o john_n 1_o john_n 3.7_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a even_o as_o he_o be_v righteous_a i_o may_v run_v over_o all_o the_o other_o particular_n there_o lay_v down_o but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o what_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o 17._o 18._o be_v say_v that_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n have_v they_o not_o know_v and_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n be_v a_o regenerate_a man_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n and_o do_v not_o they_o fear_v god_n to_o who_o god_n have_v swear_v jer._n 32.40_o that_o he_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o again_o second_o you_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o this_o argument_n because_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o those_o who_o be_v justify_v but_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o we_o must_v distinguish_v of_o a_o man_n before_o and_o after_o his_o justification_n every_o man_n be_v such_o a_o man_n before_o justification_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n he_o speak_v of_o all_o man_n but_o after_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o change_n wrought_v in_o a_o man_n as_o i_o have_v former_o prove_v at_o large_a unto_o which_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n but_o three_o you_o instance_n in_o david_n and_o abraham_n who_o be_v regenerate_v man_n answ_n we_o be_v not_o to_o forget_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_fw-mi acquaint_v we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a righteousness_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n the_o righteousness_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o sanctification_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o prophet_n speak_v say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v bless_v to_o who_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v of_o the_o latter_a where_o he_o say_v of_o the_o same_o verse_n and_o in_o who_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n which_o the_o learned_a zanchius_n do_v apprehend_v to_o be_v speak_v in_o reference_n to_o that_o sanctification_n which_o be_v in_o the_o unregenerate_v part_n understand_v the_o distinction_n right_o and_o you_o can_v want_v a_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n arg._n 3._o we_o believe_v not_o so_o steadfast_o nor_o love_n so_o perfect_o as_o we_o ought_v therefore_o be_v our_o faith_n &_o love_n imperfect_a and_o sinful_a ans_fw-fr 1._o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o antecedent_n we_o may_v deny_v the_o consequence_n it_o be_v true_a that_o if_o a_o man_n do_v not_o believe_v so_o steadfast_o and_o love_v so_o perfect_o as_o he_o ought_v that_o then_o the_o man_n do_v sin_n consider_v he_o physical_o and_o this_o we_o have_v always_o grant_v but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o his_o faith_n and_o love_n be_v sin_n but_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v so_o steadfast_o and_o love_v so_o perfect_o as_o he_o ought_v amesius_n do_v give_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o this_o in_o answer_v a_o argument_n which_o bellarmine_n do_v bring_v against_o the_o protestant_n to_o wit_n that_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v god_n in_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v god_n but_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n be_v do_v away_o the_o good_a which_o remain_v be_v please_v unto_o god_n sane_n quidem_fw-la certe_fw-la sedpeccati_fw-la maculâ_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la deletâ_fw-la bonum_fw-la substratum_fw-la placet_fw-la tom._n 4._o l._n 6._o c._n 8._o 2_o we_o say_v that_o a_o regenerate_a man_n look_v upon_o in_o the_o new_a covenant_n do_v believe_v steadfast_o and_o love_v perfect_o his_o unbelief_n and_o hatred_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v cover_v with_o the_o rich_a mantle_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n as_o far_o as_o he_o do_v believe_v true_o he_o do_v believe_v steadfast_o and_o as_o far_o as_o he_o do_v love_n he_o do_v love_n perfect_o let_v not_o his_o offend_v any_o man_n that_o i_o say_v he_o do_v love_n perfect_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o most_o protestant_a writer_n that_o a_o regenerate_a man_n have_v a_o perfection_n of_o part_n though_o not_o of_o degree_n a_o child_n may_v have_v a_o humane_a nature_n and_o the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o man_n of_o forty_o year_n old_a a_o spark_n of_o fire_n have_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o fire_n a_o drop_n of_o water_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o water_n in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o all_o the_o water_n in_o the_o sea_n so_o a_o spark_n or_o drop_n of_o love_n have_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o love_n in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o burn_v in_o the_o breast_n of_o a_o seraphim_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a and_o for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v say_v that_o abraham_n be_v not_o weak_a in_o faith_n though_o it_o be_v unquestionable_a that_o he_o have_v his_o weakness_n in_o the_o flesh_n as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n and_o that_o he_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n through_o unbelief_n but_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n give_v glory_n to_o god_n rom._n 4._o and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n likewise_o of_o amesius_n in_o the_o place_n former_o cite_v where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o only_o good_a by_o the_o object_n of_o they_o but_o in_o reference_n to_o all_o the_o cause_n of_o they_o the_o efficient_a material_a formal_a and_o final_a cause_n opera_fw-la fidelium_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la sunt_fw-la bona_fw-la ex_fw-la objecto_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la quoad_fw-la omnes_fw-la causas_fw-la efficientem_fw-la materiam_fw-la formam_fw-la et_fw-la finem_fw-la arg._n 4._o sanctification_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v always_o perfect_a while_o we_o live_v here_o in_o this_o life_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o perfect_v until_o the_o life_n to_o come_v answ_n sanctification_n be_v say_v to_o be_v perfect_v here_o in_o reference_n to_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v to_o be_v put_v off_o that_o sanctificaiion_n may_v come_v in_o the_o place_n of_o it_o not_o in_o reference_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v already_o wrought_v as_o though_o that_o sanctification_n be_v not_o already_o perfect_a if_o we_o take_v perfection_n as_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a 2._o it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o saviour_n increase_v in_o wisdom_n luk._n 2.52_o will_v you_o say_v that_o his_o wisdom_n be_v sinful_a at_o first_o because_o he_o do_v increase_v and_o grow_v in_o it_o you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v so_o as_o conclude_v that_o our_o sanctification_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a because_o it_o do_v grow_v or_o increase_v to_o a_o great_a perfection_n arg._n 5._o if_o our_o work_n be_v in_o themselves_o perfect_a then_o may_v paul_n have_v desire_v to_o have_v be_v find_v in_o they_o before_o god_n answ_n i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o these_o good_a work_n be_v not_o wrought_v in_o we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o cause_n or_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o therefore_o paul_n will_v not_o appear_v before_o god_n in_o they_o for_o justification_n but_o paul_n and_o every_o true_a saint_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o they_o do_v dare_v to_o bring_v they_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n as_o secondary_a evidence_n of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n 1_o john_n 3.14_o we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o we_o love_v the_o brethren_n he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n abide_v in_o death_n ver_fw-la 19_o and_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o shall_v persuade_v our_o heart_n before_o he_o which_o you_o maintain_v they_o to_o be_v sin_n and_o sinful_a do_v not_o do_v arg._n 6._o if_o the_o new_a man_n do_v not_o sin_n than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o man_n who_o be_v pronounce_v to_o be_v a_o bless_a man_n psal_n 32._o rom._n 4._o answ_n this_o be_v a_o plain_a fallacy_n you_o take_v the_o new_a man_n here_o physical_o who_o we_o take_v according_a to_o scripture_n spiritual_o and_o theological_o justification_n to_o speak_v proper_o be_v neither_o of_o the_o new_a man_n nor_o old_a man_n but_o of_o the_o person_n in_o who_o there_o be_v a_o old_a man_n and_o a_o new_a man_n and_o this_o man_n be_v justify_v from_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o old_a man_n by_o the_o work_n of_o